Selected quad for the lemma: sense_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sense_n worship_n worship_v write_v 30 3 4.9076 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A14350 The common places of the most famous and renowmed diuine Doctor Peter Martyr diuided into foure principall parts: with a large addition of manie theologicall and necessarie discourses, some neuer extant before. Translated and partlie gathered by Anthonie Marten, one of the sewers of hir Maiesties most honourable chamber.; Loci communes. English Vermigli, Pietro Martire, 1499-1562.; Simmler, Josias, 1530-1576.; Marten, Anthony, d. 1597. 1583 (1583) STC 24669; ESTC S117880 3,788,596 1,858

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

be_v as_o tow_v and_o the_o maker_n of_o your_o idol_n as_o a_o spark_n of_o fire_n &_o they_o both_o shall_v burn_v together_o the_o strength_n of_o these_o man_n be_v evil_a doctrine_n idolatry_n i_o mean_v the_o spark_n shall_v set_v the_o tow_n on_o fire_n both_o shall_v be_v burn_v namely_o the_o author_n of_o the_o doctrine_n together_o with_o the_o tow_n with_o his_o opinion_n because_o even_o those_o thing_n shall_v not_o abide_v &_o the_o author_n himself_o shall_v be_v much_o afflict_v esaie_n paul_n allude_v to_o the_o word_n of_o esaie_n nevertheless_o the_o sentence_n of_o paul_n be_v not_o all_o one_o with_o that_o of_o esaie_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v he_o only_o allude_v unto_o it_o right_n in_o 1._o cor._n 3_o ver_fw-la 15._o luk._n 16_o 19_o to_o the_o right_n 31_o last_o they_o bring_v a_o argument_n out_o of_o luke_n concern_v the_o rich_a man_n which_o be_v torment_v in_o the_o flame_n but_o the_o same_o be_v say_v of_o many_o to_o be_v a_o parabolicall_a narration_n of_o which_o mind_n chrysostome_n be_v but_o admit_v it_o be_v a_o history_n in_o deed_n how_o will_v it_o prove_v that_o rich_a man_n to_o be_v in_o purgatory_n see_v between_o the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n &_o that_o place_n where_o he_o be_v punish_v it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o exceed_a great_a chaos_n so_o as_o from_o thence_o none_o may_v pass_v unto_o abraham_n purgatory_n a_o evident_a proof_n that_o neither_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n nor_o yet_o intercession_n of_o saint_n be_v available_a for_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n and_o it_o seem_v a_o wonder_n how_o that_o rich_a man_n see_v he_o be_v so_o great_o afflict_v do_v not_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o yearly_a memorial_n nor_o yet_o the_o prayer_n of_o they_o that_o be_v alive_a and_o see_v abraham_n affirm_v that_o he_o may_v neither_o be_v holpen_v by_o he_o nor_o yet_o by_o lazarus_n how_o can_v the_o mass_a priest_n trust_v that_o he_o by_o his_o mass_n and_o prayer_n can_v release_v the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n undoubted_o the_o wise_a virgin_n impart_v not_o their_o oil_n unto_o the_o foolish_a 9_o matt._n 25_o 9_o neither_o can_v lazarus_n further_a the_o rich_a man_n it_o have_v be_v better_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v ponder_v in_o that_o place_n they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n wherein_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o divine_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a unto_o salvation_n man_n be_v not_o send_v either_o to_o the_o father_n or_o unto_o humane_a tradition_n nine_o to_o the_o nine_o as_o touch_v the_o holy_a city_n which_o be_v the_o society_n of_o the_o bless_a i_o confess_v that_o no_o unclean_a thing_n must_v be_v let_v in_o unto_o the_o same_o for_o they_o which_o die_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v wash_v with_o his_o blood_n beside_o this_o there_o happen_v repentance_n and_o lose_v of_o the_o flesh_n at_o the_o time_n of_o death_n wherefore_o they_o ought_v no_o more_o to_o be_v count_v unclean_a which_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n neither_o will_v we_o deny_v 10._o phil._n ●_o 10._o but_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n must_v bow_v both_o of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n 10._o to_o the_o 10._o and_o of_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o of_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n but_o these_o word_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v touch_v the_o worship_v of_o god_n for_o it_o do_v not_o only_o consist_v herein_o that_o knee_n shall_v bow_v but_o it_o chief_o require_v spiritual_a affection_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n it_o be_v speak_v there_o concern_v the_o sovereign_a power_n give_v unto_o christ_n by_o reason_n whereof_o every_o creature_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n be_v put_v in_o subjection_n under_o he_o yea_o and_o the_o devil_n together_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o damn_a soul_n be_v put_v under_o his_o foot_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o no._n and_o this_o do_v the_o word_n that_o go_v before_o sufficient_o declare_v for_o it_o be_v say_v god_n give_v he_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o every_o name_n etc._n etc._n which_o word_n if_o thou_o will_v apply_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n as_o though_o they_o which_o worship_n god_n may_v be_v in_o purgatory_n thou_o must_v of_o necessity_n confess_v that_o the_o devil_n also_o and_o damn_v spirit_n do_v worship_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o same_o sense_n be_v that_o think_v to_o be_v which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n namely_o that_o all_o creature_n 11._o apoc._n 5_o 13._o to_o the_o 11._o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o sea_n and_o under_o the_o earth_n celebrate_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n all_o thing_n do_v praise_n god_n according_a to_o their_o kind_n for_o they_o minister_v matter_n and_o occasion_n of_o divine_a praise_n otherwise_o thou_o will_v say_v that_o hill_n mountain_n tree_n dragon_n and_o other_o such_o thing_n do_v true_o and_o proper_o praise_n god_n 32_o touch_v the_o father_n faith_n the_o great_a number_n of_o father_n grant_n that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n but_o affirm_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n what_o they_o have_v judge_v concern_v this_o matter_n i_o have_v not_o what_o else_o to_o declare_v but_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v incline_v to_o this_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n but_o i_o remember_v not_o that_o i_o have_v read_v among_o any_o of_o they_o that_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o that_o otherwise_o shall_v think_v may_v not_o have_v salvation_n neither_o must_v it_o straitwaie_o be_v account_v as_o a_o thing_n necessary_o to_o be_v beléeve_v whatsoever_o the_o father_n have_v say_v millenarij_fw-la heretic_n call_v millenarij_fw-la otherwise_o let_v we_o subscribe_v unto_o the_o millenarij_fw-la among_o who_o be_v irenaeus_n victorinus_n papias_n lactantius_n methodius_n and_o many_o other_o notable_a man_n and_o man_n of_o worthy_a memory_n certeinlie_o all_o man_n subscribe_v not_o unto_o ambrose_n error_n ambrose_n &_o augustine_n have_v their_o error_n when_o as_o in_o divorsement_n he_o give_v leave_v only_o unto_o the_o man_n to_o be_v marry_v again_o neither_o will_v all_o man_n consent_v unto_o augustine_n that_o infant_n which_o die_v without_o baptism_n be_v appoint_v to_o the_o punishment_n of_o hell_n neither_o that_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o those_o infant_n augustine_n the_o papist_n against_o augustine_n and_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o agree_v not_o with_o augustine_n when_o as_o he_o say_v that_o all_o work_n of_o infidel_n be_v sin_n although_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n most_o true_a and_o most_o agreeable_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n tertullian_n be_v withstand_v for_o hold_v that_o the_o soul_n come_v traduce_n come_v exit_fw-la traduce_n by_o derivation_n from_o one_o to_o another_o albeit_o that_o augustine_n be_v not_o much_o against_o the_o same_o other_o the_o error_n of_o cyprian_a tertullian_n epiphanius_n jerom_n and_o of_o other_o they_o refuse_v cyprian_a which_o hold_v that_o heretic_n return_v unto_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o neither_o will_v they_o allow_v of_o epiphanius_n when_o he_o say_v against_o arrius_n that_o it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o six_o day_n before_o easter_n they_o shall_v eat_v nothing_o but_o bread_n with_o salt_n and_o the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o anchorato_fw-mi interprete_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o 18._o john_n 14_o 18._o to_o be_v speak_v as_o touch_v his_o divine_a nature_n neither_o do_v he_o expound_v the_o same_o to_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n as_o other_o man_n of_o right_a belief_n do_v for_o he_o will_v by_o that_o kind_n of_o speech_n that_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v under_o the_o father_n and_o his_o opinion_n be_v that_o christ_n when_o he_o pray_v in_o the_o garden_n 39_o matt._n 26_o 39_o desire_v not_o that_o thing_n as_o though_o he_o will_v have_v it_o so_o to_o be_v but_o because_o he_o will_v deceive_v the_o devil_n and_o provoke_v he_o unto_o a_o particular_a conflict_n as_o though_o christ_n feign_v in_o that_o prayer_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v in_o jerom_n that_o he_o so_o smallie_o favour_v matrimony_n that_o in_o his_o writing_n against_o jovinianus_n he_o count_v the_o marriage_n of_o two_o wife_n or_o the_o second_o or_o three_o marriage_n in_o the_o place_n of_o fornication_n and_o dionysius_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr coelesti_fw-la hierarchia_fw-la when_o he_o show_v the_o manner_n of_o burieng_v the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a he_o say_v that_o the_o dead_a carcase_n shall_v be_v anoint_v which_o at_o this_o day_n none_o of_o our_o adversary_n will_v do_v i_o
of_o the_o simple_a that_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o and_o every_o one_o from_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n you_o forbid_v man_n to_o read_v they_o at_o all_o unless_o they_o be_v translate_v by_o yourselves_o we_o grant_v indeed_o that_o our_o translation_n differ_v in_o word_n but_o very_o seldom_o in_o sense_n if_o at_o any_o time_n in_o sense_n yet_o never_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n as_o for_o differ_v in_o word_n we_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v never_o yet_o any_o mortal_a man_n two_o three_o or_o mo_z that_o without_o a_o apparent_a miracle_n can_v speak_v write_v and_o interpret_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n after_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o manner_n with_o the_o very_a same_o word_n which_o interpreter_n notwithstanding_o while_o they_o keep_v the_o true_a sense_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v though_o they_o vary_v in_o word_n wherefore_o to_o say_v the_o very_a truth_n the_o difference_n of_o our_o translation_n be_v rather_o in_o sound_n of_o word_n than_o in_o sense_n or_o meaning_n and_o where_o there_o be_v any_o alteration_n they_o be_v seldom_o any_o correction_n but_o explication_n but_o put_v the_o case_n there_o be_v some_o few_o escape_n of_o small_a weight_n in_o some_o of_o the_o first_o edition_n &_o perhaps_o some_o few_o in_o the_o latter_a by_o reason_n of_o mistake_v some_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n or_o syrian_a word_n or_o phrase_n shall_v this_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v of_o none_o effect_v shall_v the_o people_n for_o this_o cause_n not_o once_o look_v into_o the_o whole_a scripture_n for_o their_o own_o comfort_n and_o edification_n shall_v the_o few_o small_a fault_n of_o a_o interpreter_n forbid_v a_o wound_a conscience_n to_o seek_v a_o medicine_n for_o his_o malady_n and_o a_o salve_n for_o his_o sore_n shall_v man_n be_v deny_v the_o use_n of_o all_o vessel_n gold_n and_o silver_n if_o any_o crack_n or_o flaw_n happen_v unto_o they_o shall_v every_o precious_a jewel_n that_o be_v not_o adorn_v with_o the_o fine_a gold_n and_o with_o the_o best_a foil_n be_v cast_v away_o shall_v every_o good_a land_n that_o have_v a_o balk_v or_o bunch_n be_v leave_v unmanured_a shall_v every_o good_a man_n that_o be_v able_a to_o do_v service_n in_o the_o commonweal_n be_v abandon_v for_o commit_v one_o or_o two_o small_a offence_n if_o we_o see_v no_o precious_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n that_o for_o any_o accidental_a blemish_n be_v contemn_v &_o cast_v away_o shall_v the_o rich_a diamond_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v keep_v from_o the_o use_n of_o christian_n because_o of_o some_o few_o word_n misconstrue_v by_o some_o unaduised_a man_n will_v you_o deny_v the_o new_a testament_n late_o translate_v by_o your_o jesuit_n into_o english_a to_o all_o the_o english_a pretend_v catholic_n because_o some_o certain_a word_n be_v misinterpret_v therein_o some_o childish_o affectate_v &_o some_o in_o the_o very_a sense_n itself_o corrupt_v you_o shall_v have_v deal_v more_o charitable_o with_o we_o and_o not_o so_o uniustlie_o have_v accuse_v all_o our_o translation_n but_o especial_o if_o you_o have_v spy_v any_o thing_n amiss_o in_o the_o first_o edition_n which_o be_v mend_v in_o the_o latter_a you_o shall_v not_o so_o malicious_o have_v lay_v those_o thing_n to_o our_o charge_n and_o with_o more_o travel_n you_o shall_v have_v learn_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o greek_a before_o you_o have_v object_v unto_o we_o such_o thing_n as_o now_o turn_v to_o your_o own_o shame_n and_o reproof_n i_o think_v to_o have_v speak_v somewhat_o at_o large_a in_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o translation_n but_o since_o that_o learned_a divine_a master_n d._n fulke_o who_o great_a labour_n and_o diligence_n in_o the_o church_n i_o can_v never_o sufficient_o commend_v have_v so_o strong_o and_o so_o late_o confute_v all_o the_o causis_fw-la object_v against_o the_o same_o as_o all_o you_o that_o be_v the_o adversary_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a by_o all_o your_o reply_n to_o shake_v the_o credit_n of_o that_o book_n much_o less_o to_o convince_v or_o disproove_v it_o therefore_o i_o pass_v it_o over_o with_o a_o word_n or_o two_o assure_v you_o that_o we_o have_v do_v nothing_o parciallie_o but_o so_o far_o as_o god_n have_v lend_v we_o his_o talon_n we_o have_v search_v out_o both_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a in_o all_o those_o place_n wherein_o may_v be_v any_o mistrust_n of_o corruption_n and_o wrong_a interpretation_n again_o if_o we_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a copy_n have_v translate_v otherwise_o than_o your_o latin_a translation_n will_v bear_v so_o long_o as_o the_o same_o agree_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v warrant_n enough_o for_o we_o to_o use_v the_o same_o and_o too_o great_a rashness_n of_o you_o to_o deny_v it_o furthermore_o we_o confess_v that_o we_o in_o our_o translation_n be_v not_o so_o precise_a but_o that_o where_o the_o word_n of_o the_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n or_o latin_a be_v so_o difficult_a as_o they_o can_v be_v livelie_a express_v word_n for_o word_n especial_o in_o the_o english_a tongue_n we_o have_v sometime_o add_v a_o necessary_a word_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n to_o be_v understand_v which_o you_o have_v not_o do_v in_o your_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o have_v you_o leave_v such_o unperfect_a sentence_n and_o have_v give_v such_o absurd_a term_n as_o every_o good_a man_n do_v pity_n and_o lament_v your_o great_a fruitless_a labour_n furthermore_o it_o may_v be_v that_o we_o have_v not_o in_o every_o word_n keep_v the_o proper_a english_a of_o the_o greek_a or_o hebrew_n as_o neither_o you_o have_v do_v altogether_o out_o of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a in_o your_o translation_n yet_o nevertheless_o will_v the_o circumstance_n always_o bear_v the_o same_o and_o so_o can_v it_o not_o be_v justly_o say_v that_o we_o have_v any_o way_n alter_v the_o sense_n but_o now_o will_v i_o not_o have_v you_o think_v that_o we_o have_v speak_v this_o as_o though_o the_o doctrine_n which_o we_o teach_v can_v be_v defend_v unless_o our_o translation_n be_v justify_v at_o large_a for_o our_o doctrine_n be_v unreproovable_a and_o that_o which_o we_o defend_v be_v sound_a and_o the_o very_a same_o that_o christ_n leave_v in_o his_o word_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o father_n teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o they_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o writing_n and_o have_v many_o time_n seal_v with_o our_o own_o blood_n final_o that_o we_o have_v confirm_v with_o innumerable_a book_n and_o writing_n and_o that_o we_o will_v still_o steadfast_o defend_v so_o long_o as_o we_o have_v breath_n in_o our_o body_n whereupon_o also_o we_o conclude_v that_o since_o all_o our_o translation_n be_v consonant_a to_o this_o doctrine_n consonant_n to_o the_o original_a copy_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n and_o consonant_a to_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n and_o father_n teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o be_v sufficient_o authorise_v of_o themselves_o without_o receive_v any_o further_a defence_n from_o us._n but_o what_o do_v you_o of_o the_o seminary_n of_o rheims_n think_v if_o we_o shall_v receive_v into_o our_o church_n the_o translation_n which_o you_o yourselves_o late_o make_v simple_o i_o mean_v and_o nakedlie_o without_o any_o of_o your_o corrupt_a note_n and_o blasphemous_a gloss_n will_v not_o the_o very_a same_o confirm_v all_o our_o opinion_n in_o the_o chief_a matter_n as_o much_o in_o a_o manner_n as_o our_o own_o translation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o your_o fantastical_a &_o new_a devise_a term_n that_o can_v make_v christ_n true_a religion_n contrary_a to_o itself_o that_o can_v alter_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o can_v either_o enfeeble_v our_o true_a &_o ground_a position_n or_o strengthen_v your_o false_a &_o forge_a objection_n neither_o can_v the_o name_n of_o chalice_n in_o steed_n of_o cup_n turn_v our_o communion_n into_o your_o mass_n nor_o supersubstantiall_a in_o steed_n of_o daily_a or_o true_a bread_n from_o heaven_n in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n turn_v natural_a bread_n into_o the_o body_n flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n nor_o host_n in_o steed_n of_o sacrifice_n convert_v our_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_a prayer_n alm_n and_o mortification_n into_o the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o hang_v up_o idol_n of_o the_o altar_n nor_o can_v the_o name_n of_o penance_n for_o repentance_n establish_v your_o satisfaction_n nor_o condign_a for_o worthy_a take_v away_o the_o worthiness_n of_o christ_n death_n to_o erect_v your_o merit_n of_o condignity_n nor_o invocate_v for_o call_v upon_o establish_v your_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nor_o yet_o any_o other_o of_o your_o new_a inkpot_n term_n
also_o touch_v the_o life_n that_o we_o look_v for_o hereafter_o see_v what_o the_o patriarch_n &_o prophet_n see_v 3_o but_o thou_o will_v demand_v what_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n do_v then_o see_v to_o who_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n appéer_v diverse_a and_o sundry_a time_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o concern_v the_o outward_a sense_n 12._o look_v in_o 2._o kin._n 2_o verse_n 12._o they_o do_v only_o perceive_v certain_a similitude_n form_n and_o shape_n which_o be_v sometime_o offer_v they_o by_o god_n and_o his_o angel_n whereby_o they_o may_v testify_v that_o they_o be_v present_a and_o speak_v with_o those_o father_n that_o they_o hear_v they_o and_o warn_v they_o of_o thing_n for_o their_o salvation_n but_o as_o for_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o also_o their_o speech_n &_o thing_n by_o they_o signify_v the_o sense_n itself_o perceive_v not_o but_o the_o mind_n and_o reason_n gather_v by_o they_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o sense_n do_v express_v whereupon_o the_o chalde_n paraphra_v where_o it_o be_v write_v in_o exodus_fw-la 16._o exo._n 24_o 16._o that_o god_n come_v down_o upon_o mount_n sina_n do_v not_o simple_o set_v down_o that_o god_n himself_o come_v down_o but_o translate_v it_o the_o glory_n of_o god._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o certain_a mighty_a and_o wonder_a token_n be_v there_o see_v by_o the_o which_o god_n testify_v himself_o to_o be_v present_a which_o thing_n in_o like_a manner_n he_o do_v in_o the_o 6._o of_o esaie_n where_o he_o write_v 1._o esaie_n 6_o 1._o i_o see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o high_a &_o lofty_a throne_n and_o what_o manner_n shape_n and_o similitude_n these_o be_v which_o betoken_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n or_o the_o angel_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o moses_n there_o appéer_v a_o burn_a bush_n present_a in_o what_o thing_n god_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v present_a a_o cloud_n a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n smoke_n voice_n thunder_n flame_n lightning_n the_o propitiatory_a the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n vrim_fw-he and_o thumin_fw-la diverse_a form_n even_o of_o man_n which_o either_o do_v or_o speak_v something_o or_o else_o after_o some_o manner_n of_o sort_n show_v themselves_o either_o unto_o the_o prophet_n or_o unto_o other_o all_o these_o i_o say_v be_v sign_n and_o token_n of_o the_o presence_n both_o of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o offer_v themselves_o unto_o the_o father_n either_o sleep_a or_o wake_v to_o be_v perceive_v of_o they_o but_o sometime_o the_o fantasy_n or_o imagination_n that_o be_v in_o man_n be_v fashion_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n outward_o prophet_n do_v sometime_o see_v thing_n print_v in_o their_o imagination_n and_o sometime_o see_v they_o outward_o &_o help_v of_o angel_n at_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n with_o such_o kind_n of_o similitude_n and_o figure_n whereby_o those_o thing_n that_o god_n will_v show_v be_v no_o less_o express_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o which_o know_v they_o than_o if_o they_o have_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o outward_a sense_n 4_o wherefore_o in_o expound_v the_o prophet_n it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o be_v many_o time_n in_o great_a doubt_n whether_o the_o thing_n they_o speak_v of_o be_v so_o outward_o perform_v or_o else_o rather_o whether_o it_o do_v so_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o some_o place_n by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o matter_n itself_o we_o be_v compel_v to_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o vision_n jerom._n jerom._n as_o jerom_n testify_v of_o jeremies_n hose_n which_o by_o god_n commandment_n he_o lay_v down_o by_o a_o rock_n at_o the_o river_n euphrates_n and_o leave_v they_o there_o so_o long_o 1._o jerem._n 13_o 1._o till_o they_o be_v rot_v which_o yet_o he_o be_v command_v to_o take_v &_o wear_v again_o and_o this_o vision_n happen_v while_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v sharpelie_o beséege_v by_o the_o chaldean_n when_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v not_o liberty_n to_o go_v to_o and_o fro_o to_o euphrates_n for_o at_o the_o same_o time_n 11._o jere._n 47_o 11._o when_o once_o he_o will_v have_v go_v to_o anathoth_n where_o he_o be_v bear_v he_o be_v apprehend_v as_o he_o go_v out_o of_o the_o gate_n and_o charge_v with_o treachery_n and_o even_o so_o do_v the_o same_o jerom_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v only_o do_v by_o vision_n which_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o ezechiel_n 15._o ezech._n 4_o 15._o of_o the_o bread_n bake_v in_o ox_n doong_n and_o of_o his_o lie_v many_o day_n all_o upon_o one_o side_n hereunto_o may_v be_v add_v the_o cate_a of_o the_o book_n and_o such_o other_o like_o miracle_n 1._o ezech._n 3_o 1._o which_o neither_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n nor_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o time_n suffer_v so_o to_o be_v do_v as_o it_o be_v write_v and_o as_o for_o preach_v or_o expound_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o which_o the_o prophet_n have_v in_o their_o mind_n a_o thing_n see_v by_o fantasy_n or_o imagination_n be_v all_o one_o and_o of_o as_o great_a force_n as_o if_o it_o have_v outward_o happen_v but_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o fly_v to_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o mind_n when_o the_o thing_n itself_o may_v be_v do_v outward_o for_o since_o as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n to_o use_v both_o way_n according_a to_o his_o own_o pleasure_n and_o as_o he_o think_v it_o most_o fit_a and_o convenient_a for_o we_o therefore_o he_o sometime_o use_v the_o one_o way_n and_o sometime_o the_o other_o and_o yet_o in_o all_o these_o matter_n i_o think_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o ambrose_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v who_o entreat_v of_o these_o vision_n say_v that_o they_o be_v such_o as_o the_o will_n make_v choice_n of_o not_o such_o as_o nature_n frame_v which_o make_v very_o against_o they_o that_o think_v prophesieng_v to_o be_v natural_a as_o though_o such_o figure_n &_o show_v offer_v themselves_o to_o the_o outward_a sense_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v see_v or_o to_o the_o inward_a imagination_n or_o fantasy_n to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o heaven_n or_o by_o the_o influence_n of_o nature_n or_o else_o by_o the_o temperature_n of_o humour_n natural_a ambrose_n the_o vision_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v not_o natural_a for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o of_o a_o angel_n say_v ambrose_n will_v those_o thing_n and_o make_v choice_n of_o they_o before_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n that_o frame_v they_o appear_v whether_o it_o be_v god_n at_o any_o time_n or_o the_o angel_n that_o appear_v 5_o but_o here_o arise_v another_o doubt_n not_o to_o be_v wink_v at_o whether_o god_n himself_o under_o these_o image_n and_o form_n have_v at_o any_o time_n show_v himself_o or_o else_o that_o only_o the_o angel_n appéer_v always_o who_o sometime_o deal_v with_o the_o prophet_n and_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n there_o have_v be_v some_o which_o say_v that_o god_n himself_o never_o appéer_v but_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v or_o do_v in_o those_o vision_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o they_o have_v certain_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n make_v for_o they_o whereof_o one_o be_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 30._o acts._n 7_o 30._o where_o expresselie_o steeven_n call_v he_o a_o angel_n which_o speak_v with_o moses_n out_o of_o the_o bush_n 2._o exod._n 3_o 2._o and_o yet_o in_o exodus_fw-la he_o be_v name_v god_n again_o paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o say_v that_o the_o law_n be_v give_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o mediator_n 1●_n galat._n 3_o 1●_n by_o the_o disposition_n of_o angel_n and_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v write_v in_o exodus_fw-la 18._o exo._n 19_o 18._o that_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o god_n wherefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o god_n appéer_v not_o by_o himself_o but_o by_o angel_n ghost_n the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o see_v the_o essence_n or_o nature_n of_o god_n can_v be_v take_v either_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o from_o the_o son_n for_o both_o of_o they_o be_v by_o nature_n god_n how_o can_v they_o maintain_v their_o opinion_n see_v it_o be_v expresselie_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n descend_v upon_o christ_n in_o the_o image_n of_o a_o doove_n 23._o john_n 1_o 23._o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o angel_n and_o not_o a_o doove_n that_o come_v down_o doove_n the_o holy_a ghost_n show_v
moses_n beseech_v god_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la 18._o exod._n 33_o 18._o that_o he_o may_v see_v his_o face_n who_o request_n god_n for_o the_o incredible_a favour_n he_o have_v unto_o he_o will_v not_o utterlie_o gainsay_v when_o as_o he_o nevertheless_o will_v not_o grant_v he_o whole_o that_o which_o he_o desire_v therefore_o he_o answer_v very_o thou_o shall_v not_o see_v my_o face_n because_o man_n can_v behold_v the_o same_o and_o live_v 20._o ibidem_fw-la 20._o but_o my_o hinder_a part_n even_o my_o back_n shall_v thou_o see_v what_o plain_a testimony_n than_o this_o can_v there_o be_v sure_o god_n do_v here_o bind_v himself_o in_o plain_a term_n to_o appear_v unto_o moses_n in_o man_n likeness_n of_o which_o form_n or_o image_n moses_n shall_v see_v not_o the_o face_n but_o the_o back_n and_o that_o he_o perform_v faithful_o for_o as_o god_n pass_v by_o moses_n see_v the_o back_n of_o his_o image_n near_o unto_o the_o rock_n and_o he_o hear_v the_o great_a and_o mighty_a name_n of_o god_n pronounce_v with_o a_o exceed_a clear_a voice_n which_o when_o as_o he_o perceive_v he_o cast_v himself_o prostrate_a upon_o the_o earth_n and_o worship_v and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o give_v that_o worship_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n alone_o for_o see_v he_o beléeve_v he_o to_o be_v present_a according_a to_o his_o promise_n there_o can_v be_v no_o controversy_n but_o that_o he_o worship_v he_o as_o be_v there_o true_o present_a and_o doubtless_o have_v not_o god_n be_v very_o present_a at_o the_o ark_n and_o propitiatory_a 1●_n 2._o chr._n 7_o 1●_n but_o have_v only_o will_v the_o angel_n to_o answer_v such_o as_o have_v ask_v counsel_n of_o he_o since_o he_o have_v command_v the_o israelit_n to_o worship_n &_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o that_o place_n he_o shall_v have_v drive_v they_o headlong_o into_o idolatry_n to_o these_o example_n let_v we_o add_v that_o history_n which_o in_o the_o book_n of_o king_n be_v mention_v of_o micheas_n the_o prophet_n 19_o 1._o kin._n 22_o 19_o which_o prophesy_v before_o achab_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o say_v that_o he_o see_v god_n and_o a_o host_n of_o angel_n present_a with_o he_o and_o that_o he_o hear_v god_n ask_v which_o of_o they_o will_v deceive_v achab_n and_o that_o one_o offer_v himself_o ready_a to_o become_v a_o lie_v spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n of_o king_n achab._n by_o this_o vision_n it_o be_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v a_o plain_a and_o notable_a difference_n between_o god_n and_o the_o angel_n which_o appéer_v altogether_o unto_o the_o prophet_n wherefore_o that_o gift_n which_o god_n give_v unto_o the_o father_n must_v not_o be_v extenuate_v or_o make_v less_o than_o it_o be_v and_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o he_o be_v present_a in_o very_a deed_n when_o he_o appéer_v see_v we_o read_v that_o so_o it_o be_v do_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o contrary_a so_o far_o as_o can_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n any_o thing_n against_o it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v so_o and_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a for_o we_o to_o attribute_v unto_o angel_n all_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o vision_n for_o so_o we_o may_v easy_o slip_v into_o that_o error_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o world_n be_v not_o make_v immediate_o by_o god_n but_o by_o the_o angel_n at_o his_o commandment_n appear_v god_n be_v true_o present_v so_o often_o as_o the_o scripture_n testify_v that_o he_o appear_v let_v we_o therefore_o confess_v that_o god_n be_v true_o present_a in_o those_o thing_n and_o that_o he_o show_v himself_o under_o diverse_a similitude_n as_o often_o as_o we_o hear_v the_o scripture_n either_o testify_v or_o show_v so_o much_o 8_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o place_n before_o allege_a as_o touch_v the_o place_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o 19_o galat._n 3_o 19_o i_o grant_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n be_v use_v in_o the_o give_n of_o the_o law_n minister_v when_o god_n give_v the_o law_n the_o angel_n minister_v for_o they_o be_v with_o god_n when_o he_o speak_v they_o bring_v forth_o darkness_n thunder_n flame_n of_o fire_n and_o lightning_n they_o prepare_v the_o table_n of_o stone_n and_o be_v many_o way_n diligent_a about_o god_n while_o he_o be_v present_a and_o talk_v with_o the_o people_n neither_o be_v it_o deny_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o god_n speak_v or_o give_v the_o law_n as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v testify_v yea_o rather_o there_o have_v be_v that_o expound_v the_o hand_n of_o a_o mediator_n not_o to_o be_v moses_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o whether_o true_o or_o no_o i_o be_o not_o present_o to_o discuss_v god_n acts._n 7_o 30._o the_o angel_n that_o speak_v to_o moses_n in_o the_o bush_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o s._n steeven_n say_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o a_o angel_n appéer_v unto_o moses_n in_o a_o bush_n and_o speak_v unto_o he_o long_a answer_n need_v not_o for_o if_o by_o the_o angel_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v understand_v all_o scruple_n be_v remoove_v 9_o but_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o concern_v this_o matter_n may_v the_o more_o certeinlie_o and_o plain_o be_v understand_v i_o think_v it_o be_v good_a to_o confirm_v they_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o of_o the_o father_n chrysost_n chrysost_n chrysostom_n in_o the_o 14._o homily_n upon_o john_n say_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o father_n of_o old_a time_n see_v it_o be_v of_o permission_n but_o not_o of_o that_o pure_a and_o simple_a substance_n of_o god_n and_o he_o add_v if_o they_o have_v see_v that_o substance_n they_o shall_v have_v see_v every_o part_n like_o a_o other_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v pure_a simple_a and_o not_o to_o be_v describe_v wherefore_o it_o neither_o stand_v lie_v nor_o sit_v in_o such_o wise_a as_o be_v sometime_o show_v unto_o the_o prophet_n moreover_o he_o add_v that_o god_n before_o the_o come_n of_o his_o son_n into_o flesh_n exercise_v the_o father_n in_o such_o kind_n of_o vision_n &_o similitude_n and_o in_o that_o place_n grant_v that_o which_o we_o affirm_v a_o little_a before_o that_o the_o spirit_n create_v of_o god_n such_o as_o be_v the_o angel_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n can_v be_v see_v with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n wherefore_o it_o be_v much_o less_o to_o be_v beléeve_v that_o we_o be_v able_a by_o our_o outward_a sense_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v that_o it_o be_v only_o proper_a to_o god_n the_o father_n to_o be_v invisible_a and_o not_o to_o the_o son_n he_o allege_v that_o say_n of_o paul_n that_o he_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n 15._o colos_n 1_o 15._o and_o sure_o he_o shall_v fail_v in_o the_o property_n of_o a_o image_n unless_o he_o be_v invisible_a as_o be_v he_o who_o image_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n also_o in_o his_o three_o treatise_n upon_o john_n say_v concern_v moses_n although_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o god_n face_n to_o face_n yet_o when_o he_o make_v suit_n to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v see_v his_o face_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n his_o very_a substance_n he_o can_v not_o obtain_v it_o and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o add_v he_o see_v a_o cloud_n and_o fire_n which_o be_v figure_n and_o a_o little_a after_o if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o son_n be_v visible_a before_o he_o be_v incarnate_v they_o do_v but_o dote_v many_o other_o thing_n beside_o these_o do_v augustine_n gather_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o fortunatus_n out_o of_o nazianzen_n jerom_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v overlong_o here_o to_o recite_v 10_o but_o yet_o will_v i_o here_o bring_v forth_o a_o couple_n of_o argument_n which_o be_v wont_v to_o be_v object_v against_o those_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v define_v we_o say_v at_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n can_v therefore_o be_v comprehend_v by_o sense_n because_o his_o nature_n be_v not_o corporal_a but_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n seem_v not_o to_o have_v beléeve_v this_o for_o tertullian_n against_o praxias_n write_v tertullian_n tertullian_n that_o god_n be_v a_o body_n and_o diverse_a time_n he_o affirm_v ●he_n same_o in_o other_o place_n yea_o and_o in_o his_o little_a book_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la he_o say_v that_o our_o soul_n be_v body_n and_o which_o
full_o and_o perfect_o comprehend_v the_o creator_n whereupon_o chrysostom_n in_o his_o 14._o homily_n upon_o john_n chrysost_n chrysost_n ambrose_n in_o his_o first_o book_n upon_o the_o first_o of_o luke_n and_o jerom_n as_o augustine_n report_v in_o the_o place_n before_o recite_v do_v deny_v that_o the_o angel_n see_v god_n which_o can_v simple_o and_o absolute_o be_v understand_v see_v christ_n say_v that_o they_o see_v the_o face_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n wherefore_o the_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o whole_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o his_o nature_n and_o substance_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n 46._o john_n 6_o 46._o but_o he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n he_o have_v see_v the_o father_n again_o as_o the_o father_n know_v i_o so_o i_o know_v the_o father_n so_o that_o to_o know_v all_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n full_o and_o perfect_o be_v grant_v only_o unto_o christ_n who_o be_v god_n other_o also_o shall_v in_o very_a deed_n see_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o according_a to_o their_o capacity_n but_o if_o thou_o ask_v whether_o all_o shall_v see_v it_o equal_o or_o no_o hereunto_o i_o will_v not_o answer_v at_o this_o time_n for_o we_o shall_v have_v another_o place_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o diversity_n or_o equality_n of_o reward_n in_o our_o celestial_a country_n life_n whether_o in_o sense_n or_o mind_n we_o know_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n 13_o but_o what_o shall_v we_o set_v down_o concern_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o this_o life_n whether_o do_v our_o mind_n while_o we_o live_v here_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n substance_n no_o very_o for_o it_o be_v write_v man_n shall_v not_o see_v i_o and_o live_v no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n and_o paul_n say_v further_a 16._o exod._n 33_o 20_o john_n 1_o 18._o 1._o tim._n 6_o 16._o that_o he_o can_v be_v see_v because_o he_o dwell_v in_o the_o light_n that_o no_o man_n can_v attain_v unto_o but_o this_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o every_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n for_o it_o be_v grant_v we_o to_o know_v god_n after_o a_o sort_n while_o we_o be_v yet_o in_o this_o life_n we_o must_v therefore_o account_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o essential_a &_o substantial_a knowledge_n of_o god_n as_o the_o schoolman_n term_v it_o neither_o be_v that_o any_o thing_n against_o it_o 30._o deu._n 34_o 10._o gen._n 32_o 30._o that_o moses_n be_v say_v to_o have_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n which_o also_o jacob_n say_v before_o he_o nor_o yet_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o same_o moses_n in_o another_o place_n 11_o exod._n 33_o 11_o that_o god_n talk_v with_o he_o as_o one_o friend_n do_v with_o another_o for_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o speak_v absolute_o but_o by_o way_n of_o comparison_n make_v with_o other_o because_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v unto_o man_n in_o that_o age_n concern_v god_n be_v know_v to_o those_o excellent_a man_n above_o all_o other_o for_o it_o please_v god_n to_o show_v himself_o unto_o they_o after_o a_o certain_a exquisite_a &_o unaccustomed_a manner_n which_o he_o do_v not_o to_o other_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n augustine_n &_o chrysostom_n do_v thereby_o gather_v for_o that_o when_o moses_n desire_v to_o see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n it_o be_v deny_v he_o chapter_n before_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n 14_o now_o there_o remain_v that_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o our_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o we_o can_v possible_o compass_v while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n first_o the_o same_o as_o we_o have_v say_v be_v natural_a simonides_n our_o knowledge_n towards_o god_n be_v natural_a &_o obscure_a simonides_n and_o that_o very_o slender_a and_o obscure_a which_o simonides_n know_v very_o well_o who_o as_o tully_n write_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr natura_fw-la decrum_fw-la be_v ask_v of_o hiero_n king_n of_o sicilia_n what_o god_n be_v he_o ever_o defer_v his_o answer_n because_o the_o more_o he_o do_v study_v upon_o it_o the_o dark_a it_o always_o seem_v unto_o he_o alexandrinus_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n wherefore_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n 50._o stroma_n allege_v a_o reason_n why_o our_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v so_o difficult_a say_v it_o be_v neither_o general_a kind_n of_o creature_n nor_o difference_n nor_o accident_n nor_o subject_n for_o accident_n and_o therefore_o not_o for_o we_o to_o know_v who_o comprehend_v such_o thing_n only_o with_o our_o mind_n and_o reason_n the_o effect_n whereby_o the_o philosopher_n use_v to_o bring_v themselves_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v far_o inferior_a to_o his_o worthiness_n strength_n and_o power_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o common_a and_o frivolous_a which_o they_o declare_v of_o he_o and_o we_o give_v he_o certain_a epithet_n and_o property_n namely_o good_a just_a wise_a bountiful_a and_o such_o like_a because_o we_o have_v not_o more_o excellent_a thing_n nor_o more_o goodly_a title_n that_o can_v be_v fit_a or_o more_o agreeable_a unto_o he_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o these_o thing_n in_o he_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o we_o speak_v they_o for_o as_o in_o simpleness_n of_o nature_n so_o in_o goodness_n righteousness_n and_o wisdom_n he_o be_v far_o otherwise_o than_o man_n either_o can_v or_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v 15_o but_o beside_o this_o natural_a knowledge_n that_o we_o have_v of_o god_n faith_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n that_o also_o offer_v itself_o unto_o we_o which_o consist_v of_o faith_n and_o be_v reveal_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 18_o ephes_n 2_o 18_o this_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n for_o christ_n say_v 44._o john_n 6_o 44._o none_o can_v come_v unto_o i_o unless_o the_o father_n draw_v he_o i'faith_o therefore_o gather_v plentiful_a knowledge_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n so_o far_o as_o our_o salvation_n require_v and_o the_o capacity_n of_o this_o life_n admit_v but_o yet_o as_o paul_n witness_v this_o knowledge_n also_o be_v unperfect_a for_o we_o know_v now_o as_o by_o a_o view_n 12._o 1._o co._n 13_o 12._o through_o a_o glass_n and_o in_o part_n and_o although_o we_o profit_v in_o this_o knowledge_n more_o and_o more_o while_o we_o live_v yet_o do_v we_o not_o reach_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n i_o know_v very_o well_o moses_n augustine_n opinion_n of_o paul_n and_o moses_n that_o augustine_n think_v as_o touch_v paul_n and_o moses_n that_o they_o have_v sometime_o see_v the_o substance_n of_o god_n with_o their_o mind_n while_o they_o live_v here_o but_o i_o shall_v hardly_o yield_v to_o he_o therein_o forasmuch_o as_o i_o judge_v those_o place_n of_o john_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o paul_n which_o i_o allege_v before_o to_o be_v most_o plain_a &_o evident_a whereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n none_o have_v see_v the_o father_n at_o any_o time_n 46._o john_n 6_o 46._o he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n he_o have_v see_v the_o father_n and_o note_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o place_n the_o same_o be_v also_o true_a of_o the_o son_n as_o concern_v his_o godhead_n for_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v before_o both_o out_o of_o chrysostome_n and_o augustine_n the_o nature_n both_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n be_v invisible_a neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n to_o say_v as_o augustine_n say_v that_o they_o see_v the_o nature_n &_o substance_n of_o god_n not_o by_o the_o use_n of_o their_o outward_a sense_n but_o as_o it_o be_v ravish_v and_o in_o a_o trance_n quite_o remoove_v from_o the_o use_n of_o this_o life_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n nay_o rather_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o have_v hear_v that_o it_o be_v deny_v unto_o moses_n 20_o exod._n 33_o 20_o to_o have_v a_o sight_n of_o god_n countenance_n wherefore_o through_o the_o knowledge_n that_o come_v by_o faith_n we_o understand_v what_o god_n and_o his_o love_a kindness_n towards_o we_o be_v as_o much_o as_o suffice_v for_o our_o assure_a and_o perfect_a salvation_n but_o among_o all_o these_o thing_n whereby_o we_o know_v god_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n nothing_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o be_v christ_n himself_o wherefore_o paul_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o say_v 16._o 1._o tim_n 3_o 16._o doubtless_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n god_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o lord_n also_o say_v philip_n 9_o john_n 14_o 9_o he_o that_o see_v i_o see_v also_o the_o
dream_n be_v hard_a &_o uncerteine_a which_o be_v say_v to_o foretoken_v the_o event_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v so_o doubtful_a and_o uncerteine_a as_o it_o seem_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v sure_o determine_v by_o they_o hereunto_o moreover_o be_v to_o be_v add_v that_o see_v dream_n as_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v may_v come_v not_o of_o one_o cause_n but_o of_o many_o we_o shall_v easy_o fall_v into_o error_n if_o among_o those_o many_o cause_n we_o hold_v we_o to_o any_o one_o wherefore_o we_o be_v to_o suspend_v our_o judgement_n and_o not_o light_o to_o divine_v of_o any_o thing_n upon_o dream_n see_v that_o they_o may_v more_o easy_o be_v judge_v of_o by_o the_o event_n than_o the_o event_n can_v be_v conjecture_v of_o by_o they_o now_o then_o there_o remain_v only_o a_o certain_a suspicion_n to_o be_v have_v by_o dream_n and_o which_o also_o must_v be_v but_o very_o slender_a those_o two_o most_o famous_a poet_n i_o mean_v homer_n and_o virgil_n feign_v two_o sundry_a gate_n of_o dream_n the_o one_o of_o horn_n and_o the_o other_o of_o ivory_n ivory_n gate_n of_o horn_n and_o ivory_n the_o horn_n they_o attribute_v to_o true_a dream_n but_o the_o ivory_n to_o false_a dream_n and_o as_o they_o say_v there_o pass_v a_o great_a number_n of_o dream_n through_o the_o ivory_n gate_n than_o through_o the_o horn_n gate_n wherefore_o in_o judge_v of_o natural_a dream_n let_v we_o not_o pass_v the_o measure_n of_o suspicion_n neither_o let_v we_o cleave_v too_o much_o unto_o vision_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o part_n of_o christian_n man_n to_o lean_v unto_o perilous_a and_o uncerteine_a conjecture_n more_o than_o be_v meet_v for_o while_o they_o be_v over-earnest_a about_o these_o they_o omit_v thing_n of_o more_o importance_n beside_o that_o the_o devil_n do_v oftentimes_o intermeddle_v these_o thing_n of_o purpose_n 15._o look_v in_o 1_o king_n 3_o verse_n 15._o either_o to_o drive_v we_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v evil_a or_o to_o withdraw_v we_o from_o that_o which_o be_v good_a 7_o but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o we_o must_v determine_v concern_v dream_n put_v into_o we_o either_o by_o god_n devil_n of_o dream_n send_v by_o god_n or_o by_o the_o devil_n or_o by_o the_o devil_n whensoever_o any_o thing_n be_v foresee_v in_o dream_n by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n or_o his_o angel_n require_v in_o divine_a any_o thing_n by_o vision_n or_o dream_n two_o thing_n be_v require_v two_o thing_n be_v require_v the_o first_o be_v that_o certain_a mark_n or_o image_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v show_v do_v print_v some_o kind_n of_o form_n in_o our_o fantasy_n or_o imagination_n second_o that_o there_o be_v add_v judgement_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o know_v what_o these_o thing_n do_v import_v touch_v the_o first_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o these_o token_n and_o image_n be_v many_o time_n cast_v into_o our_o sense_n by_o reason_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n make_v outward_o to_o appear_v as_o when_o baltazar_n that_o succéede_v nabuchadnezar_n see_v the_o finger_n of_o a_o hand_n write_v upon_o the_o wall_n as_o we_o read_v in_o daniel_n 5._o dan._n 5_o 5._o and_o sometime_o image_n and_o likeness_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o very_a imagination_n or_o fantasy_n without_o any_o external_a sight_n and_o this_o happen_v two_o way_n for_o either_o the_o form_n or_o similitude_n lay_v up_o in_o the_o mind_n be_v call_v for_o back_o again_o by_o god_n to_o such_o use_n as_o like_v he_o as_o when_o to_o jeremie_n be_v show_v a_o séthe_a pot_n turn_v towards_o the_o north_n or_o else_o new_a form_n be_v show_v 13._o jer._n 1_o 13._o which_o be_v never_o know_v before_o to_o the_o sense_n as_o if_o the_o form_n and_o likeness_n of_o colour_n shall_v be_v show_v to_o a_o man_n blind_a from_o his_o nativity_n and_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o divination_n letter_n image_n or_o form_n instead_o of_o letter_n the_o image_n or_o form_n be_v in_o stead_n of_o letter_n for_o even_o as_o they_o be_v order_v and_o dispose_v so_o be_v the_o oracle_n diverslie_o give_v like_v as_o by_o the_o diverse_a change_n of_o letter_n our_o speech_n and_o sentence_n be_v many_o way_n vary_v teacher_n which_o instruct_v scholar_n may_v by_o their_o pain_n and_o diligence_n in_o teach_v print_n sundry_a kind_n of_o image_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o their_o hearer_n 49._o god_n otherwhile_o in_o dream_n give_v not_o both_o form_n and_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o to_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n gen._n 40_o 9_o and_o 41_o 1._o they_o which_o only_o have_v the_o sign_n be_v not_o absolute_o call_v prophet_n john_n 11_o 49._o although_o it_o be_v not_o in_o their_o power_n to_o give_v they_o judgement_n and_o the_o very_a right_a understanding_n of_o thing_n but_o god_n give_v both_o yet_o not_o always_o indeed_o at_o once_o for_o into_o some_o he_o otherwhile_o instil_v only_a form_n of_o thing_n as_o he_o do_v unto_o pharaoh_n unto_o his_o butler_n and_o to_o his_o baker_n and_o likewise_o to_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n all_o which_o have_v need_n of_o a_o interpreter_n to_o expound_v their_o dream_n as_o joseph_n and_o daniel_n and_o very_o those_o to_o who_o be_v show_v only_o the_o sign_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v be_v not_o in_o very_a deed_n account_v prophet_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o have_v only_o a_o certain_a degree_n and_o entrance_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o step_n unto_o prophesieng_v even_o as_o caiphas_n the_o high_a priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v for_o a_o prophet_n see_v he_o understand_v not_o what_o he_o speak_v 8_o but_o why_o god_n will_v otherwhile_o open_v by_o dream_n unto_o king_n and_o prince_n prince_n why_o god_n will_v by_o dream_n open_a thing_n unto_o prince_n thing_n afterward_o to_o follow_v there_o be_v as_o i_o now_o remember_v two_o reason_n the_o one_o because_o he_o have_v a_o regard_n unto_o the_o people_n and_o nation_n which_o they_o govern_v for_o if_o the_o great_a dearth_n which_o be_v approach_v have_v not_o be_v signify_v unto_o pharaoh_n egypt_n have_v utterlie_o perish_v with_o famine_n secondlie_o it_o be_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o these_o dream_n to_o make_v those_o prophet_n and_o holy_a man_n know_v to_o the_o world_n which_o lie_v hide_v before_o which_o thing_n the_o holy_a scripture_n testify_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o joseph_n and_o the_o ethnic_a historiographer_n also_o write_v many_o thing_n of_o the_o dream_n which_o prince_n sometime_o have_v have_v some_o of_o the_o which_o tertullian_n mention_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la tertullian_n tertullian_n as_o of_o astyages_n dream_n concern_v his_o daughter_n mandane_n likewise_o of_o philip_n of_o macedonia_n and_o of_o julius_n octavius_n who_o marcus_n cicero_n see_v in_o a_o dream_n be_v but_o a_o child_n &_o afterward_o meeting_n with_o he_o know_v he_o by_o that_o dream_n and_o diverse_a such_o like_a thing_n be_v recite_v by_o the_o same_o father_n 9_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v omit_v god_n dream_n send_v by_o god_n let_v we_o confirm_v by_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v do_v that_o some_o dream_n be_v send_v by_o god_n matthew_n testify_v 20._o matth._n 1_o 20._o that_o joseph_n the_o husband_n of_o marie_n be_v thrice_o warn_v by_o the_o angel_n pilat_n wife_n also_o by_o a_o dream_n understand_v 19_o matt._n 27_o 19_o and_o cause_v her_o husband_n to_o be_v tell_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o condemn_v innocent_a christ_n and_o in_o the_o 16._o of_o the_o act_n 9_o acts._n 16_o 9_o a_o man_n of_o macedonia_n appéer_v unto_o paul_n in_o a_o dream_n 9_o acts._n 18_o 9_o and_o move_v he_o to_o go_v into_o macedonia_n and_o the_o lord_n command_v the_o same_o paul_n in_o a_o dream_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o corinth_n because_o he_o have_v a_o exceed_a great_a number_n of_o people_n in_o that_o city_n i_o can_v recite_v many_o mo_z place_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n but_o that_o the_o time_n will_v not_o permit_v judaeus_fw-la philo_z judaeus_fw-la philo_z judaeus_fw-la as_o jerom_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illustribus_fw-la testify_v write_v five_o book_n of_o dream_n immit_v by_o god_n cyprian_a cyprian_a cyprian_n also_o report_v that_o in_o his_o time_n certain_a thing_n be_v show_v in_o sleep_v which_o make_v to_o the_o edifieng_v of_o the_o congregation_n and_o it_o be_v not_o a_o little_a but_o rather_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o credit_n that_o he_o give_v unto_o they_o but_o augustine_n in_o his_o 12._o de_fw-fr genesi_fw-la ad_fw-la litteram_fw-la augustine_n augustine_n the_o three_o chapter_n say_v there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o vision_n the_o first_o he_o say_v pertain_v to_o the_o outward_a sense_n vision_n three_o
he_o say_v in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o matthew_n heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v and_o it_o be_v common_o speak_v every_o where_o the_o word_n of_o god_n endure_v for_o ever_o 8._o esaie_n 40_o 8._o 3_o and_o although_o there_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n infinite_a thing_n which_o may_v strong_o prove_v the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o in_o this_o place_n i_o will_v measure_v myself_o think_v it_o sufficient_a that_o i_o have_v after_o a_o sort_n show_v the_o spring_n or_o head_n the_o rest_n may_v easy_o be_v find_v out_o by_o any_o that_o will_v take_v pain_n to_o search_v diligent_o i_o will_v now_o likewise_o bréefelie_o declare_v the_o commodity_n which_o we_o receive_v thereby_o 16._o the_o commodity_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o tim._n 3_o 16._o we_o read_v in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o the_o 2._o to_o timothy_n that_o all_o scripture_n inspire_v by_o god_n be_v profitable_a both_o to_o teach_v and_o to_o improove_v to_o wit_n as_o touch_v doctrine_n and_o to_o correct_v and_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n which_o belong_v unto_o manner_n and_o lest_o thou_o shall_v think_v that_o any_o thing_n do_v want_v he_o add_v straight_o way_n 17._o ibidem_fw-la 17._o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a and_o ready_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o in_o the_o 15_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n we_o read_v 15._o roman_n 15._o for_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v now_o write_v they_o be_v write_v before_o hand_n for_o our_o learning_n that_o by_o patience_n &_o consolation_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o may_v have_v hope_n which_o thing_n see_v they_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o while_o this_o be_v write_v the_o new_a testament_n be_v not_o publish_v what_o shall_v we_o now_o think_v have_v the_o monument_n both_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o evangelist_n add_v thereunto_o true_o we_o have_v now_o even_o these_o very_a thing_n more_o plentifullie_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 13._o the_o power_n of_o save_v attribute_v to_o the_o scripture_n 1._o tim._n 4_o 13._o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fear_v not_o to_o attribute_v the_o power_n of_o save_v unto_o they_o for_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n the_o four_o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v take_v heed_n to_o thyself_o and_o to_o thy_o doctrine_n continue_v therein_o for_o in_o so_o do_v thou_o shall_v save_v both_o thyself_o and_o those_o that_o hear_v thou_o 19_o matt._n 13_o 19_o and_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o it_o be_v describe_v that_o the_o seed_n fall_v some_o in_o the_o way_n some_o among_o stone_n and_o thorn_n and_o some_o in_o good_a ground_n 15._o we_o be_v bear_v anew_o by_o the_o word_n 1._o cor._n 4_o 15._o the_o gospel_n or_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o christ_n be_v understand_v by_o the_o seed_n because_o thereby_o we_o be_v bear_v anew_o wherefore_o paul_n write_v bold_o unto_o some_o i_o have_v beget_v you_o by_o the_o gospel_n and_o augustine_n do_v then_o first_o arise_v out_o of_o his_o error_n wherewith_o he_o have_v be_v captivate_v scripture_n augustine_n convert_v by_o read_v of_o the_o scripture_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o at_o the_o read_n of_o paul_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v in_o his_o confession_n the_o darkness_n be_v chase_v from_o his_o eye_n and_o unto_o such_o rede_n he_o be_v drive_v by_o a_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o he_o hear_v voice_n as_o if_o child_n have_v song_n and_o say_v take_v and_o read_v take_v and_o read_v which_o voice_n when_o he_o have_v obey_v &_o have_v light_v upon_o that_o place_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n put_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 14._o rom._n 13_o 14._o etc._n etc._n he_o be_v convert_v whole_o unto_o god_n they_o decree_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v confirm_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n constantine_n bad_a that_o controversy_n shall_v be_v decide_v by_o they_o who_o have_v so_o long_o before_o strive_v against_o the_o truth_n these_o be_v notable_a token_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n add_v herewithal_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n can_v be_v confirm_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n than_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n declare_v constantine_n the_o great_a in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a exhort_v the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o by_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v appease_v the_o controversy_n spring_v up_o in_o religion_n 4_o but_o he_o that_o will_v know_v more_o at_o large_a the_o property_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 8._o the_o property_n of_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o 19_o psalm_n psal_n 19_o 8._o let_v he_o read_v the_o 19_o psalm_n there_o they_o be_v describe_v both_o with_o marvellous_a brevity_n and_o great_a elegancy_n first_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v call_v temima_n that_o be_v immaculate_a &_o perfect_a second_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o it_o do_v restore_v the_o soul_n and_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v for_o in_o profane_a learning_n thirdlie_o it_o be_v call_v a_o sure_a testimony_n of_o the_o lord_n whereas_o man_n counsel_n be_v evermore_o variable_a and_o inconstant_a it_o teach_v the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a whereas_o other_o knowledge_n do_v instruct_v only_o the_o prudent_a and_o sharp_a witted_a hearer_n moreover_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v right_a and_o have_v nothing_o crooked_a awry_o or_o unjust_a as_o in_o every_o part_n of_o man_n law_n be_v espy_v also_o it_o rejoice_v the_o hart_n even_o with_o such_o a_o gladness_n as_o be_v chaste_a and_o holy_a the_o lord_n commandment_n be_v pure_a but_o man_n devise_n be_v never_o sincere_o make_v see_v they_o be_v fraited_z with_o many_o craft_n and_o deceit_n it_o lighten_v the_o eye_n but_o contrariwise_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n darken_v they_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v clean_o and_o be_v offer_v undefiled_a unto_o we_o be_v without_o any_o falsehood_n or_o wrong_n whereas_o man_n ordinance_n be_v most_o fowlie_o infect_v with_o both_o the_o evil_n the_o statute_n of_o god_n endure_v for_o ever_o but_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v ordain_v by_o man_n be_v always_o shift_v oftentimes_o change_v and_o be_v never_o of_o long_a continuance_n to_o conclude_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v prescribe_v be_v both_o true_a and_o just_a which_o can_v be_v affirm_v of_o man_n law_n moreover_o they_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v above_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n where_o as_o the_o best_a nature_n do_v very_o much_o mislike_v the_o precept_n of_o man_n law_n final_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o sweet_a than_o the_o honey_n and_o the_o honey_n comb_n where_o contrariwise_o man_n be_v not_o accustom_v to_o teach_v any_o other_o than_o hard_a difficult_a and_o often_o time_n cruel_a thing_n beside_o these_o property_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o purpose_v not_o to_o add_v any_o more_o for_o they_o that_o be_v studious_a may_v easy_o of_o themselves_o find_v out_o the_o other_o fruit_n and_o commodity_n 5_o now_o must_v i_o declare_v another_o point_n which_o i_o promise_v scripture_n to_o what_o judgement_n we_o must_v stand_v for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_n by_o what_o judgement_n and_o abitrer_n we_o must_v assure_v ourselves_o for_o understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n two_o token_n i_o have_v always_o observe_v by_o which_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o divine_a scripture_n may_v be_v perceive_v namely_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n itself_o concern_v the_o spirit_n john_n write_v in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o his_o gospel_n 47._o the_o truth_n be_v know_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o word_n john_n 8_o 47._o that_o christ_n thus_o say_v if_o you_o have_v god_n to_o your_o father_n why_o do_v you_o not_o acknowledge_v my_o word_n and_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o be_v not_o adopt_v to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christ_n testify_v in_o this_o place_n that_o when_o we_o have_v once_o obtain_v the_o same_o spirit_n we_o may_v so_o discern_v betwixt_o his_o word_n and_o a_o strange_a word_n as_o the_o same_o will_v appear_v very_o evident_a and_o plain_a unto_o us._n according_a to_o which_o sense_n he_o also_o say_v in_o another_o place_n my_o sheep_n know_v my_o voice_n and_o follow_v not_o a_o stranger_n 4._o john_n 10_o 4._o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o we_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v make_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n which_o follow_v not_o falsehood_n error_n and_o heresy_n which_o be_v voice_n of_o stranger_n but_o do_v imitate_v only_o the_o
remain_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v examine_v one_o whether_o the_o angel_n have_v in_o this_o wise_a put_v on_o humane_a body_n may_v be_v call_v man_n i_o think_v not_o for_o if_o we_o understand_v humane_a flesh_n which_o be_v form_v and_o bear_v a_o soul_n reasonable_a sure_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o angel_n in_o this_o sort_n have_v humane_a flesh_n what_o then_o will_n some_o say_v be_v the_o sense_n beguile_v when_o man_n see_v they_o no_o very_o for_o the_o sense_n do_v only_o judge_v of_o outward_a thing_n and_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v apparent_a but_o what_o do_v inwardlie_a force_n or_o move_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o see_v they_o judge_v not_o this_o be_v the_o part_n of_o reason_n to_o seek_v and_o search_v out_o it_o must_v also_o be_v add_v that_o angel_n do_v not_o always_o keep_v those_o body_n with_o they_o because_o they_o be_v not_o join_v unto_o they_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o substance_n so_o as_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o body_n shall_v become_v one_o person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o although_o it_o be_v a_o very_a doove_n wherein_o he_o descend_v 16_o matth._n 3_o 16_o yet_o be_v not_o he_o together_o of_o one_o substance_n with_o it_o wherefore_o the_o doove_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o yet_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o doove_n 1._o the_o doove_n be_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o doove_n num._n 12_o 18_o gene._n 3_o 1._o otherwise_o angel_n as_o we_o teach_v before_o may_v enter_v secret_o into_o a_o body_n which_o be_v make_v before_o and_o which_o before_o have_v his_o be_v as_o it_o be_v read_v of_o the_o angel_n which_o speak_v in_o the_o ass_n of_o balaam_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n which_o speak_v unto_o eve_n by_o the_o serpent_n but_o of_o this_o kind_n we_o dispute_v not_o now_o but_o only_o say_v that_o angel_n abide_v after_o this_o manner_n in_o sensible_a creature_n be_v not_o join_v to_o they_o in_o one_o &_o the_o selfsame_o substance_n wherefore_o the_o ass_n can_v not_o be_v call_v a_o angel_n nor_o the_o angel_n a_o ass_n no_o more_o than_o the_o serpent_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n the_o devil_n or_o the_o devil_n a_o serpent_n but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o somuch_o as_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n god_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v man_n and_o man_n be_v god_n be_v man_n and_o man_n be_v god_n by_o reason_n of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o substance_n wherein_o be_v two_o nature_n before_o which_o time_n when_o he_o appear_v unto_o abraham_n and_o unto_o the_o father_n although_o he_o have_v true_a flesh_n yet_o because_o the_o same_o be_v not_o join_v in_o one_o substance_n with_o he_o neither_o may_v he_o be_v call_v flesh_n neither_o be_v the_o flesh_n god_n but_o afterward_o when_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o both_o flesh_n and_o soul_n so_o as_o there_o be_v only_o one_o substance_n or_o person_n then_o may_v it_o be_v true_o say_v that_o man_n be_v god_n and_o god_n be_v man_n by_o which_o mean_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o shall_v very_o be_v bear_v that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v death_n and_o redeem_v mankind_n 14._o matt._n 8_o ●0_n look_v part_n 2_o place_z 17._o art_n 6._o john_n 8_o 40._o roma_fw-it 1_o 3._o acts._n 2_o 22._o esaie_n 7_o 14._o wherefore_o he_o true_o call_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o in_o john_n he_o say_v you_o seek_v to_o kill_v i_o a_o man_n that_o have_v tell_v you_o the_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v say_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n and_o peter_n in_o the_o act_n you_o have_v kill_v say_v he_o a_o man_n ordain_v unto_o you_o of_o god_n and_o esaie_n behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n these_o word_n have_v great_a force_n for_o unless_o christ_n have_v be_v very_a man_n a_o virgin_n can_v not_o have_v conceive_v he_o neither_o have_v bring_v he_o forth_o nor_o yet_o have_v call_v he_o her_o son_n this_o do_v tertullian_n considerate_o note_v tertullian_n tertullian_n if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o stranger_n say_v he_o a_o virgin_n can_v not_o either_o have_v conceive_v he_o or_o bear_v he_o also_o the_o angel_n salute_v marie_n on_o this_o manner_n fear_v not_o say_v he_o for_o thou_o shall_v conceive_v a_o son_n 43._o matt._n 1_o 22._o luke_n 1_o 43._o etc._n etc._n and_o elizabeth_n say_v how_o happen_v this_o to_o i_o that_o the_o mother_n of_o my_o lord_n come_v unto_o i_o if_o she_o have_v have_v christ_n only_o as_o a_o ghost_n she_o may_v not_o be_v call_v his_o mother_n 42._o elizabeth_n luke_n 1_o 42._o also_o the_o say_a woman_n say_v bless_v be_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o womb_n but_o how_o can_v it_o have_v be_v call_v the_o fruit_n of_o her_o womb_n if_o he_o have_v bring_v a_o body_n with_o he_o from_o heaven_n and_o in_o esaie_n it_o be_v write_v 1_o esaie_n 11_o 1_o a_o rod_n shall_v come_v forth_o of_o the_o stock_n of_o less_o &_o a_o blossom_n shall_v flourish_v out_o of_o her_o root_n jesse_n be_v the_o stock_n marie_n be_v the_o root_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o blossom_n which_o take_v his_o body_n of_o she_o matthew_z also_o thus_o begin_v his_o gospel_n ●_o matth._n 1_o ●_o the_o book_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o david_n the_o son_n of_o abraham_n if_o christ_n bring_v a_o body_n from_o heaven_n how_o be_v he_o the_o son_n of_o abraham_n or_o of_o david_n moreover_o the_o promise_n make_v to_o abraham_n concern_v christ_n be_v on_o this_o wise_a 18._o gen._n 22_o 18._o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v paul_n entreat_v of_o these_o word_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o he_o say_v not_o say_v he_o in_o seed_n 8._o galat._n 3_o 8._o as_o though_o in_o many_o but_o in_o thy_o seed_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 5._o gen._n 9_o 5._o we_o read_v of_o who_o christ_n come_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n all_o these_o saieng_n prove_v most_o evident_o that_o christ_n be_v very_a man_n and_o that_o in_o he_o be_v one_o substance_n of_o god_n and_o man_n 5._o rom._n 9_o 5._o these_o thing_n can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o angel_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n although_o when_o he_o appéer_v he_o have_v very_a flesh_n as_o we_o say_v before_o but_o not_o join_v to_o he_o in_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o substance_n neither_o yet_o can_v it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o be_v a_o very_a doove_n indeed_o although_o the_o same_o wherein_o he_o once_o appéer_v be_v a_o very_a doove_n 16_o matth._n 3_o 16_o and_o according_a to_o this_o sense_n write_v tertullian_n those_o thing_n that_o we_o cite_v before_o which_o be_v not_o right_o understand_v may_v breed_v either_o error_n or_o offence_n unto_o those_o that_o shall_v read_v they_o appear_v if_o angel_n do_v true_o eat_v &_o drink_v when_o they_o appear_v 16_o now_o remain_v the_o other_o question_n to_o wit_n whether_o angel_n clothe_v with_o body_n take_v do_v eat_v and_o drink_v indeed_o of_o the_o schoolman_n some_o think_v that_o they_o do_v eat_v indeed_o and_o some_o deny_v it_o scotus_n think_v that_o to_o eat_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o chew_v meat_n scotus_n scotus_n and_o to_o conveie_v it_o down_o into_o the_o belly_n but_o this_o do_v the_o angel_n wherefore_o he_o gather_v that_o they_o do_v very_o eat_v other_o think_v that_o to_o eat_v be_v not_o only_o to_o chew_v the_o meat_n or_o to_o conveie_v it_o down_o into_o the_o belly_n but_o further_o to_o convert_v it_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o own_o body_n by_o concoction_n through_o the_o quicken_a power_n which_o thing_n see_v the_o angel_n do_v not_o they_o do_v not_o true_o eat_v tobias_n the_o book_n of_o tobias_n the_o book_n of_o tobias_n be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrews_n but_o yet_o we_o may_v apply_v the_o same_o to_o our_o purpose_n save_v that_o there_o be_v a_o disagréement_n in_o the_o copy_n for_o in_o that_o book_n which_o munster_n set_v forth_o in_o hebrew_n in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n the_o angel_n raphael_n say_v 19_o tobi._n 12_o 19_o i_o seem_v to_o you_o to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v but_o i_o do_v not_o eat_v nor_o yet_o drink_v the_o common_a translation_n have_v i_o seem_v to_o you_o to_o eat_v and_o to_o drink_v but_o i_o use_v invisible_a meat_n and_o drink_v neither_o text_n deni_v but_o that_o the_o angel_n do_v eat_v after_o some_o manner_n but_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v gather_v of_o these_o word_n i_o think_v that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o
rom._n 3_o 5._o if_o our_o righteousness_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n be_v god_n unjust_a for_o punish_v that_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v how_o absurd_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v that_o our_o sin_n shall_v make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o if_o they_o make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n why_o do_v he_o condemn_v they_o if_o the_o reason_n be_v there_o of_o force_n it_o more_o strong_o conclude_v in_o this_o place_n if_o god_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n how_o shall_v he_o judge_v the_o world_n also_o there_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v in_o he_o two_o will_n and_o those_o one_o contrary_a to_o the_o other_o but_o in_o god_n there_o be_v only_o one_o will_n if_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o they_o will_v be_v one_o against_o another_o as_o touch_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o thing_n so_o that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o both_v not_o to_o do_v and_o to_o do_v the_o selfsame_o thing_n we_o will_v demand_v to_o what_o purpose_n be_v so_o many_o exhortation_n persuasion_n and_o calling_n to_o do_v well_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o these_o thing_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v vain_a to_o what_o end_n do_v christ_n give_v warning_n unto_o judas_n 24._o matt._n 26_o 24._o if_o he_o will_v be_v betray_v of_o he_o these_o speech_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v do_v as_o it_o be_v in_o game_n but_o god_n deal_v gravelie_o and_o earnest_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o deal_v with_o man_n also_o there_o will_v follow_v a_o great_a absurdity_n for_o the_o difference_n between_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o between_o virtue_n and_o sin_n will_v be_v take_v away_o god_n shall_v be_v appoint_v the_o author_n of_o both_o whereas_o he_o be_v the_o sovereign_a good_a there_o can_v proceed_v nothing_o but_o goodness_n from_o he_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v detest_v murder_n adultery_n and_o incest_n he_o will_v say_v it_o be_v a_o good_a work_n the_o matter_n will_v be_v bring_v to_o such_o a_o pass_n as_o good_a will_v be_v call_v evil_a and_o evil_a good_a yea_o rather_o there_o will_v be_v no_o difference_n at_o all_o betwixt_o they_o for_o through_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o forbid_v and_o command_v any_o thing_n we_o judge_v of_o good_a and_o evil_n but_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v be_v void_a of_o all_o judgement_n in_o like_a manner_n will_v be_v take_v away_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o conscience_n we_o read_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 15._o rom._n 2_o 15._o that_o we_o have_v cogitation_n which_o shall_v defend_v and_o accuse_v one_o another_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o this_o other_o opinion_n be_v true_a we_o will_v gather_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o accuse_v ourselves_o but_o god_n the_o author_n there_o be_v plenty_n of_o excuse_n for_o the_o wicked_a they_o will_v say_v wherefore_o need_v i_o to_o repent_v for_o this_o thing_n see_v god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o repentance_n will_v be_v take_v away_o and_o a_o window_n open_v unto_o great_a mischéefe_n wherefore_o shall_v we_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n because_o he_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n but_o sin_n be_v good_a it_o have_v be_v all_o one_o to_o have_v lie_v still_o in_o sin_n we_o will_v not_o lament_v our_o sin_n but_o rather_o rejoice_v in_o they_o for_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o shall_v rejoice_v for_o the_o work_n of_o god_n if_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n praise_n and_o reioise_v will_v follow_v but_o not_o sorrow_n much_o will_v be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o estimation_n of_o god_n if_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n that_o say_v also_o which_o they_o show_v may_v be_v bring_v namely_o 4._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 4._o that_o god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v if_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v save_v he_o use_v good_a mean_n he_o incourage_v not_o man_n to_o sin_n for_o sin_n do_v lead_v man_n to_o perdition_n many_o more_o reason_n may_v be_v bring_v but_o for_o this_o time_n we_o will_v content_v ourselves_o with_o these_o part_n argument_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n 3_o let_v we_o see_v on_o the_o other_o part_n what_o thing_n they_o be_v that_o may_v affirm_v god_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n it_o be_v write_v 24._o rom._n 1_o 24._o that_o see_v the_o idolater_n know_v god_n and_o will_v not_o worship_v he_o as_o god_n therefore_o as_o meet_v it_o be_v he_o give_v they_o up_o unto_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n and_o unto_o shameful_a lust_n if_o he_o give_v they_o he_o also_o provoke_v and_o move_v they_o in_o exodus_fw-la it_o be_v write_v 12._o exod._n 9_o 12._o that_o god_n have_v harden_v and_o dull_v the_o hart_n of_o pharaoh_n so_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hearken_v when_o moses_n command_v he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o let_v the_o people_n depart_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o esaie_n 10._o esaie_n 6_o 10._o he_o be_v say_v to_o blind_v the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o see_v when_o we_o pour_v out_o our_o prayer_n before_o god_n we_o desire_v he_o that_o he_o 13._o matt._n 6_o 13._o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o that_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a to_o what_o end_n shall_v we_o thus_o pray_v if_o these_o thing_n shall_v not_o sometime_o be_v no_o man_n intreat_v except_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v or_o which_o do_v hang_v over_o his_o head_n or_o which_o he_o fear_v will_v come_v to_o pass_v they_o be_v wont_v to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v and_o will_v these_o thing_n not_o as_o they_o be_v sin_n but_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v punishment_n to_o chasten_v he_o that_o have_v sin_v but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o appoint_v the_o punishment_n and_o fault_n to_o be_v all_o one_o thing_n see_v the_o nature_n of_o punishment_n and_o fault_n be_v diverse_a a_o fault_n arise_v from_o the_o will_n whereas_o punishment_n be_v lay_v upon_o we_o against_o our_o will_n if_o it_o be_v commit_v voluntary_o than_o it_o be_v no_o punishment_n to_o affirm_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v voluntary_a and_o yet_o unuoluntarie_a can_v hardly_o be_v make_v to_o agree_v that_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o cause_n may_v also_o be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o effect_n but_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o will_n inclination_n property_n and_o effect_n whereby_o we_o be_v provoke_v to_o sin_n if_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n why_o dare_v we_o not_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n that_o which_o remoove_v the_o impediment_n if_o the_o thing_n afterward_o happen_v or_o the_o effect_n follow_v it_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o cause_n of_o sin_n what_o do_v chéefelie_o let_v sin_n even_o grace_n and_o the_o good_a spirit_n of_o god_n except_o these_o keep_v we_o back_o we_o shall_v rush_v headlong_o into_o most_o gréevous_a crime_n who_o can_v remove_v grace_n or_o take_v away_o the_o spirit_n but_o only_o god_n which_o give_v they_o if_o he_o remove_v the_o let_n no_o doubt_n but_o he_o be_v some_o cause_n of_o sin_n also_o he_o that_o minister_v a_o occasion_n of_o any_o thing_n he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o author_n thereof_o although_o he_o be_v not_o the_o chief_a cause_n if_o he_o give_v a_o occasion_n he_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v call_v author_n god_n know_v the_o hardness_n of_o pharaos_n hart_n and_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o holpen_v by_o the_o spirit_n will_v be_v provoke_v to_o sin_n so_o the_o law_n be_v say_v to_o increase_v sin_n 1._o rom._n 7_o 1._o if_o it_o be_v not_o propose_v to_o the_o regenerate_a for_o we_o always_o bend_v ourselves_o unto_o that_o which_o we_o be_v forbid_v and_o covet_v that_o which_o we_o be_v deny_v god_n command_v pharaoh_n to_o let_v the_o people_n go_v what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o offer_v a_o occasion_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o harden_v we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n do_v minister_v occasion_n yea_o and_o he_o not_o only_o give_v occasion_n but_o we_o can_v also_o show_v commandment_n wherein_o he_o command_v sin_n we_o have_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o king_n that_o achab_n be_v a_o wicked_a prince_n that_o god_n determine_v to_o punish_v he_o in_o battle_n he_o will_v have_v he_o bring_v to_o this_o by_o the_o flattery_n and_o false_a persuasion_n of_o false_a prophet_n god_n be_v bring_v in_o to_o talk_v with_o the_o spirit_n who_o can_v seduce_v achab_n there_o step_v forth_o a_o evil_a spirit_n which_o say_v 22._o 1._o kin_n 22_o 22._o i_o will_v be_v a_o lie_v spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o
motion_n of_o the_o mind_n unto_o thing_n forbid_v wicked_a deliberation_n naughty_a endeavour_n &_o corrupt_a custom_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o sin_n comprehend_v both_o the_o root_n itself_o and_o also_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o same_o neither_o must_v they_o be_v hearken_v unto_o which_o babble_n that_o these_o thing_n be_v no_o sin_n for_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v they_o by_o this_o name_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o also_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o speak_v and_o stand_v unto_o his_o doctrine_n and_o moreover_o the_o ●erie_a etymology_n of_o the_o word_n itself_o do_v show_v sin_n the_o etymology_n of_o the_o word_n sin_n that_o the_o first_o motion_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o corruption_n of_o nature_n be_v sin_n for_o this_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v sin_n come_v of_o this_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v to_o err_v from_o the_o right_a scope_n appoint_v by_o what_o mean_v soever_o the_o same_o come_v to_o pass_v nature_n the_o rule_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o see_v it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o of_o all_o our_o action_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v very_o conformable_a to_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n sure_o we_o be_v then_o prone_a unto_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v forbid_v we_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o even_o at_o the_o first_o push_n be_v carry_v straight_o headlong_o unto_o they_o without_o all_o controversy_n we_o must_v be_v say_v to_o sin_n that_o be_v to_o err_v from_o the_o scope_n and_o from_o the_o end_n appoint_v unto_o us._n the_o like_a signification_n there_o be_v of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n for_o that_o which_o be_v in_o that_o tongue_n call_v chataa_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o word_n chata_n which_o thou_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o judge_n 16._o verse_n 16._o the_o 20._o chapter_n use_v in_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n wherein_o i_o declare_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v take_v that_o be_v to_o miss_v the_o mark_n for_o it_o be_v there_o write_v of_o the_o seven_o hundred_o child_n of_o benjamin_n that_o they_o be_v wont_v so_o to_o throw_v stone_n out_o of_o a_o sling_n as_o they_o can_v hit_v even_o a_o hair_n and_o will_v not_o miss_v one_o whit_n beside_o this_o experience_n itself_o teach_v how_o gréevous_a these_o evil_n be_v even_o in_o we_o which_o be_v regenerate_v for_o we_o be_v so_o hinder_v by_o they_o as_o we_o can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o observe_v in_o every_o point_n 17_o exod._n 12_o 17_o we_o be_v also_o command_v not_o to_o lust_n to_o the_o which_o precept_n every_o one_o give_v his_o secret_a consent_n and_o be_v witness_n to_o himself_o how_o much_o he_o do_v withstand_v by_o reason_n of_o our_o pronesse_n unto_o sin_n and_o first_o motion_n unto_o vice_n regenerate_v in_o what_o sort_n the_o law_n be_v fulfil_v in_o man_n regenerate_v but_o if_o the_o father_n do_v seem_v to_o write_v sometime_o that_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v by_o man_n regenerate_v in_o christ_n they_o speak_v of_o a_o obedience_n begin_v and_o of_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o fulfil_v as_o have_v much_o imperfection_n join_v therewith_o for_o they_o pronounce_v they_o to_o be_v perfect_a 12._o they_o be_v perfect_a which_o perceive_v their_o own_o imperfection_n matt._n 6_o 12._o and_o to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o can_v perceive_v their_o own_o imperfection_n that_o they_o may_v daily_o say_v with_o other_o lord_n forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n and_o acknowledge_v with_o paul_n that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a way_n further_o to_o go_v also_o the_o same_o father_n do_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v find_v none_o no_o not_o the_o holy_a virtue_n the_o most_o godly_a man_n have_v not_o perform_v all_o virtue_n that_o have_v most_o perfect_o love_v all_o virtue_n for_o as_o jerom_n say_v he_o that_o excel_v other_o in_o one_o virtue_n do_v oftentimes_o fail_v in_o another_o and_o he_o cit_v cicero_n who_o say_v that_o there_o can_v easy_o be_v find_v one_o which_o be_v most_o excellent_a either_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n or_o in_o the_o art_n of_o rhethorike_n but_o to_o find_v one_o that_o excel_v in_o both_o kind_n together_o it_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o wherefore_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v make_v famous_a and_o renown_a the_o entire_a benefit_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n bestow_v upon_o we_o he_o not_o only_o touch_v original_a sin_n but_o also_o comprehend_v under_o one_o name_n of_o sin_n all_o kind_n of_o vice_n which_o do_v flow_v from_o thence_o enter_v by_o adam_n as_o by_o the_o common_a root_n and_o mass_n sin_n enter_v 46_o now_o we_o must_v see_v by_o which_o one_o man_n it_o be_v that_o paul_n say_v sin_n have_v such_o a_o entrance_n into_o the_o world_n the_o same_o undoubted_o be_v the_o first_o adam_n who_o be_v as_o a_o certain_a common_a lump_n or_o mass_n wherein_o be_v contain_v all_o mankind_n which_o lump_n be_v corrupt_v we_o can_v be_v bring_v forth_o into_o the_o world_n but_o corrupt_v and_o defile_v eue._n the_o fault_n be_v ascribe_v to_o adam_n not_o to_o eue._n and_o although_o eve_n transgress_v before_o the_o man_n yet_o be_v the_o original_n of_o sin_v ascribe_v unto_o adam_n because_o the_o succession_n be_v account_v in_o man_n and_o not_o in_o woman_n howbeit_o ambrose_n by_o one_o man_n understand_v it_o to_o be_v eue._n but_o see_v that_o word_n one_o in_o that_o place_n be_v the_o masculine_a gender_n the_o signification_n thereof_o can_v but_o hardly_o and_o with_o much_o wrestle_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o woman_n other_o do_v think_v that_o under_o the_o common_a name_n of_o man_n both_o of_o they_o as_o well_o adam_n as_o eve_n be_v understand_v so_o that_o this_o speech_n may_v not_o differ_v much_o from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n male_a and_o female_a create_v he_o they_o 27._o gen_n 2_o 27._o neither_o do_v they_o much_o regard_v this_o adiective_n 24._o gen._n 2_o 24._o one_o because_o the_o scripture_n testify_v that_o adam_n and_o eve_n be_v all_o one_o flesh_n the_o first_o interpretation_n be_v the_o more_o sincere_a and_o easy_a therefore_o i_o willing_o follow_v the_o same_o but_o we_o must_v remember_v what_o paul_n write_v unto_o timothy_n 14._o 1._o tim._n 2_o 14._o that_o although_o both_o those_o two_o first_o parent_n sin_v yet_o there_o be_v not_o one_o manner_n of_o transgression_n in_o they_o both_o deceive_v paul_n say_v that_o adam_n be_v not_o deceive_v for_o he_o say_v that_o adam_n be_v not_o deceive_v which_o be_v gather_v by_o that_o which_o they_o answer_v god_n when_o he_o reproove_v they_o for_o the_o woman_n be_v ask_v wherefore_o she_o do_v it_o she_o accuse_v the_o serpent_n 13._o gen._n 3_o 13._o the_o serpent_n say_v she_o deceive_v i_o but_o adam_n when_o he_o be_v demand_v the_o same_o question_n say_v not_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v but_o he_o say_v the_o woman_n 12._o gen._n 3_o 12._o who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o deliver_v i_o a_o apple_n and_o i_o do_v eat_v these_o thing_n must_v not_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o we_o affirm_v that_o no_o error_n do_v happen_v unto_o man_n when_o he_o transgress_v transgress_v a_o error_n be_v in_o adam_n that_o transgress_v for_o as_o it_o be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o ethic_n in_o every_o kind_n of_o sin_n there_o always_o happen_v some_o error_n this_o only_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o man_n be_v not_o seduce_v by_o so_o gross_a a_o guile_n as_o the_o woman_n be_v and_o this_o do_v very_o much_o further_a paul_n reason_n for_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o will_v the_o woman_n to_o keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n because_o she_o be_v a_o instrument_n fit_a to_o deceive_v and_o this_o he_o confirm_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o first_o parent_n for_o she_o that_o persuade_v man_n to_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o she_o can_v right_o instruct_v he_o and_o she_o that_o can_v be_v seduce_v by_o the_o devil_n and_o deceive_v by_o the_o serpent_n it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o she_o to_o bear_v office_n in_o the_o church_n woman_n eccle._n 25_o 33_o say_v that_o sin_n begin_v at_o the_o woman_n yet_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la say_v that_o sin_n have_v his_o first_o beginning_n from_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o history_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n but_o paul_n as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v do_v keep_v the_o usual_a manner_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o ascribe_v succession_n and_o procreation_n unto_o man_n and_o not_o unto_o woman_n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o teach_v at_o that_o
he_o for_o he_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n suffer_v it_o for_o our_o salvation_n but_o to_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v some_o without_o sin_n although_o all_o man_n do_v die_v be_v even_o to_o join_v together_o thing_n which_o be_v repugnant_a and_o contrary_a one_o with_o another_o 21._o by_o testimony_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o infant_n be_v not_o without_o sin_n psal_n 51_o 7._o ephe._n 3_o 3._o gen._n 8_o 21._o but_o beside_o this_o place_n there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o of_o other_o also_o which_o may_v prove_v that_o infant_n be_v not_o without_o sin_n for_o david_n say_v behold_v i_o be_o conceive_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n have_v my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o and_o paul_n to_o the_o ephesian_n call_v we_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o nature_n and_o in_o genesis_n it_o be_v write_v the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v prone_a to_o evil_n even_o from_o his_o infancy_n also_o there_o be_v many_o other_o place_n which_o serve_v for_o this_o purpose_n beside_o these_o which_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o us._n 48_o now_o see_v it_o have_v be_v declare_v of_o i_o what_o the_o apostle_n mean_v by_o sin_n and_o by_o what_o one_o man_n the_o same_o be_v enter_v into_o the_o world_n there_o remain_v to_o consider_v by_o what_o mean_v the_o same_o have_v be_v spread_v abroad_o the_o matter_n indeed_o be_v obscure_a and_o very_a hard_a and_o therefore_o i_o purpose_v the_o less_o to_o stand_v upon_o it_o for_o see_v the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v plain_o teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v original_a sin_n and_o that_o it_o be_v conve●hed_v over_o unto_o the_o posterity_n obscure_a the_o manner_n of_o propagation_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v obscure_a although_o we_o understand_v not_o the_o manner_n and_o way_n how_o it_o be_v pour_v into_o they_o yet_o we_o must_v yield_v unto_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o be_v too_o careful_a or_o to_o trouble_v ourselves_o in_o reason_v more_o than_o be_v necessary_a as_o touch_v the_o way_n and_o manner_n which_o be_v hard_o to_o be_v know_v and_o may_v without_o damage_n be_v leave_v unknown_a howbeit_o i_o will_v not_o think_v much_o to_o rehearse_v those_o mean_n which_o i_o have_v observe_v among_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n who_o opinion_n touch_v this_o matter_n be_v four_o in_o number_n the_o first_o be_v of_o they_o which_o suppose_v that_o we_o receive_v of_o the_o parent_n the_o soul_n together_o with_o the_o body_n that_o even_o as_o god_n by_o humane_a seed_n do_v frame_v the_o body_n so_o of_o the_o same_o he_o creat_v the_o soul_n this_o opinion_n augustine_n mention_v in_o his_o ten_o book_n upon_o genesis_n ad_fw-la literam_fw-la and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n and_o do_v never_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v remember_v disallow_v the_o same_o yea_o rather_o he_o say_v that_o by_o this_o doctrine_n may_v be_v dissolve_v this_o knot_n of_o original_a sin_n parent_n tertullian_n think_v that_o man_n receive_v their_o soul_n from_o parent_n tertullian_n and_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n favour_v this_o opinion_n who_o argument_n when_o i_o examine_v diligent_o i_o judge_v they_o probable_a but_o yet_o not_o necessary_a for_o that_o which_o they_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o 46._o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n touch_v the_o 66._o soul_n which_o come_v forth_o of_o jacobs_n thigh_n 26._o what_o be_v allege_v for_o the_o same_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n verse_n 26._o it_o may_v be_v expound_v not_o unfit_o by_o the_o figure_n synecdoche_n so_o that_o by_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o man_n be_v understand_v the_o body_n which_o without_o controversy_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o parent_n also_o by_o the_o soul_n we_o may_v understand_v the_o grose_a part_n of_o the_o soul_n such_o be_v the_o vegetative_a part_n &_o the_o sensitive_a part_n which_o doubtless_o be_v procreate_v of_o the_o seed_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n sometime_o use_v this_o word_n soul_n in_o that_o sense_n christ_n testify_v in_o the_o gospel_n where_o he_o say_v 25._o mat._n 16_o 25._o he_o that_o lose_v his_o soul_n for_o my_o sake_n shall_v find_v it_o another_o of_o their_o reckon_v as_o augustine_n write_v in_o his_o ten_o book_n upon_o genesis_n be_v this_o in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o woman_n ●1_n gen._n 2_o ●1_n eue._n whether_o god_n breathe_v a_o soul_n into_o eue._n it_o be_v not_o write_v that_o god_n breathe_v into_o her_o a_o live_a soul_n whereupon_o they_o gather_v that_o she_o have_v not_o only_o her_o body_n from_o adam_n but_o her_o soul_n also_o but_o this_o reason_n augustine_n judge_v weak_a for_o it_o may_v be_v reply_v upon_o that_o it_o have_v be_v once_o already_o say_v that_o god_n breathe_v a_o soul_n into_o adam_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o need_v no_o repetition_n thereof_o for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o new_a manner_n of_o procreation_n of_o soul_n bring_v in_o the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v pass_v it_o over_o with_o silence_n but_o see_v the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o a_o new_a manner_n we_o ought_v to_o use_v that_o which_o it_o have_v before_o express_v especial_o see_v we_o see_v that_o adam_n say_v of_o his_o wife_n 14._o gen._n 2_o 14._o this_o be_v now_o bone_n of_o my_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o my_o flesh_n but_o do_v not_o add_v and_o soul_n of_o my_o soul_n the_o which_o have_v be_v more_o sweet_a and_o have_v rather_o serve_v to_o express_v the_o knit_n of_o matrimony_n but_o augustine_n confess_v that_o the_o doubt_n be_v not_o therefore_o dissolve_v for_o if_o we_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v soul_n create_v every_o day_n and_o so_o create_v as_o in_o the_o body_n of_o they_o there_o go_v before_o no_o mean_n of_o seed_n which_o he_o call_v ratio_fw-la seminalis_fw-la work_n whether_o god_n cease_v the_o seven_o day_n from_o all_o his_o work_n then_o god_n shall_v not_o seem_v to_o have_v perfect_o cease_v from_o all_o his_o work_n the_o seven_o day_n see_v he_o still_o every_o day_n creat_v soul_n of_o nothing_o but_o unto_o this_o argument_n it_o may_v peradventure_o be_v answer_v that_o in_o the_o body_n derive_v from_o parent_n it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o there_o be_v find_v quality_n and_o condition_n whereby_o it_o be_v able_a to_o receive_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n and_o this_o be_v that_o seminalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la here_o speak_v of_o 49_o but_o whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v say_v as_o touch_v these_o argument_n and_o answer_n so_o it_o be_v 9_o augustine_n think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o virgin_n by_o propagation_n heb._n 7_o 9_o that_o augustine_n altogether_o incline_v this_o way_n that_o at_o the_o lest_o wise_a he_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o bless_a virgin_n by_o propagation_n which_o he_o say_v that_o other_o also_o do_v judge_v beside_o himself_o and_o that_o they_o do_v affirm_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n for_o there_o it_o be_v thus_o say_v that_o the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n do_v excel_v the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n because_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o the_o priesthood_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v more_o excellent_a than_o the_o préesthood_n of_o aaron_n because_o levy_v give_v ten_o unto_o melchisedech_n for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n who_o pay_v tithe_n unto_o melchisedech_n but_o christ_n also_o shall_v have_v be_v no_o less_o in_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n levy_v christ_n be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n than_o be_v levy_v than_o be_v levy_v if_o he_o have_v receive_v both_o his_o soul_n and_o his_o body_n from_o he_o and_o so_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o dignity_n of_o each_o préesthood_n have_v be_v alike_o see_v either_o of_o they_o in_o abraham_n pay_v tithe_n to_o melchisedech_n but_o here_o they_o which_o favour_n that_o opinion_n may_v answer_v that_o there_o be_v beside_o some_o other_o manner_n of_o difference_n between_o christ_n and_o levy_v because_o albeit_o both_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n as_o well_o concern_v the_o body_n as_o touch_v the_o soul_n yet_o do_v not_o both_o of_o they_o after_o one_o manner_n derive_v their_o nature_n from_o he_o for_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o levy_v be_v beget_v and_o bear_v after_o the_o ordinary_a manner_n that_o other_o man_n be_v procreate_v wherefore_o augustine_n pass_v over_o this_o reason_n and_o bring_v another_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n wherein_o be_v write_v as_o he_o think_v under_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n 19_o wisd_v 8_o 19_o i_o have_v by_o lot_n obtain_v a_o good_a soul_n for_o he_o think_v
constraint_n although_o such_o be_v this_o necessity_n as_o it_o have_v no_o compulsion_n join_v therewith_o god_n be_v of_o necessity_n good_a and_o can_v sin_v by_o any_o mean_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o not_o drive_v by_o force_n to_o be_v good_a which_o thing_n augustine_n in_o his_o 22._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o thirty_o chapter_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v because_o god_n himself_o say_v he_o can_v sin_v therefore_o shall_v we_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v free_a will_n ambrose_n in_o his_o second_o book_n and_o three_o chapter_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la unto_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n testify_v that_o god_n be_v free_a when_o he_o say_v 11_o 1._o co._n 12_o 11_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n work_v all_o thing_n divide_v unto_o all_o as_o please_v he_o according_a to_o the_o choice_n of_o his_o free_a will_n and_o not_o for_o to_o obey_v necessity_n in_o these_o sentence_n of_o these_o father_n free_a will_n be_v so_o take_v necessity_n freedom_n be_v contrary_a unto_o compulsion_n not_o unto_o necessity_n that_o it_o be_v contrary_a unto_o violence_n and_o compulsion_n not_o that_o it_o be_v equal_o bend_v to_o either_o part_n whereupon_o jerom_n in_o his_o homily_n of_o the_o prodigal_a son_n which_o he_o write_v unto_o damasus_n because_o he_o take_v free_a will_n in_o another_o sense_n therefore_o he_o write_v otherwise_o it_o be_v only_a god_n say_v he_o on_o who_o sin_n fall_v not_o nor_o can_v fall_v but_o other_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o have_v free_a will_n may_v be_v bow_v every_o way_n also_o it_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o bless_a spirit_n and_o angel_n that_o they_o can_v sin_v see_v their_o felicity_n be_v already_o confirm_v wherefore_o augustine_n in_o his_o 22._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o thirty_o chapter_n say_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n even_o as_o the_o first_o immortality_n which_o adam_n through_o sin_n lose_v be_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o shall_v not_o die_v even_o so_o the_o first_o free_a will_n be_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o shall_v not_o sin_n but_o the_o last_o free_a will_n shall_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o possible_o sin_n yet_o nevertheless_o there_o be_v grant_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o liberty_n unto_o they_o not_o whereby_o they_o can_v be_v bow_v to_o either_o part_n but_o such_o as_o although_o that_o which_o they_o do_v be_v of_o necessity_n yet_o thereby_o they_o be_v not_o compel_v or_o violent_o drive_v for_o even_o as_o there_o be_v certain_a true_a thing_n so_o manifest_a as_o the_o mind_n can_v but_o consent_v unto_o they_o sin_v why_o the_o bless_v can_v sin_v so_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n now_o reveal_v and_o make_v manifest_a be_v so_o good_a a_o thing_n as_o the_o saint_n can_v fail_v or_o forsake_v the_o same_o so_o likewise_o although_o we_o of_o necessity_n do_v sin_n before_o we_o be_v regenerate_v in_o christ_n yet_o be_v not_o therefore_o the_o power_n of_o the_o will_v violate_v for_o whatsoever_o we_o do_v both_o we_o do_v it_o willing_o and_o also_o we_o be_v lead_v to_o do_v it_o upon_o some_o hope_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o be_v therefore_o account_v to_o differ_v nothing_o from_o brute_n beast_n for_o they_o beast_n the_o not_o regenerate_v differ_v from_o brute_n beast_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v move_v with_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o judgement_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o by_o a_o free_a judgement_n but_o in_o man_n although_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o renew_v there_o be_v as_o we_o have_v say_v much_o liberty_n remain_v as_o touch_v civil_a &_o moral_a work_n further_o among_o the_o very_a sin_n wherein_o they_o be_v of_o necessity_n conversant_a they_o have_v a_o choice_n to_o choose_v one_o and_o refuse_v a_o other_o though_o they_o can_v attain_v unto_o those_o thing_n which_o please_v god_n these_o thing_n do_v not_o accord_v with_o brute_n beast_n for_o they_o be_v rather_o drive_v by_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n than_o that_o they_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n by_o any_o liberty_n or_o free_a choice_n man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v free_a freedom_n three_o manner_n of_o freedom_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o compulsion_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o sin_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o misery_n the_o first_o liberty_n from_o compulsion_n be_v give_v unto_o all_o man_n howbeit_o unto_o sin_n and_o misery_n all_o man_n which_o have_v not_o attein_v unto_o christ_n be_v altogether_o subject_a but_o after_o what_o sort_n man_n which_o be_v regenerate_v be_v subject_a either_o to_o sin_n or_o to_o misery_n while_o they_o live_v here_o i_o will_v afterward_o declare_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o will_n be_v not_o constrain_v to_o sin_n through_o this_o necessity_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o 7_o but_o that_o we_o may_v with_o the_o more_o perspicuity_n and_o plainness_n declare_v all_o this_o whole_a matter_n it_o must_v be_v first_o determine_v what_o these_o word_n free_a violent_a and_o will_v do_v signify_v we_o call_v that_o free_a willing_a what_o be_v free_a violent_a and_o willing_a which_o have_v two_o or_o more_o thing_n set_v before_o it_o can_v choose_v as_o it_o lu_v what_o it_o will_n and_o therefore_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o will_n of_o man_n not_o regenerate_v be_v universallie_o free_a free_n a_o definition_n of_o free_n for_o it_o can_v choose_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v belong_v to_o salvation_n restrain_v the_o will_n of_o the_o not_o regenerate_v be_v great_o restrain_v violent_a be_v that_o which_o be_v so_o move_v of_o a_o outward_a beginning_n that_o it_o of_o itself_o nothing_o help_v unto_o that_o motion_n but_o rather_o resist_v it_o as_o when_o a_o stone_n be_v cast_v on_o high_a that_o be_v say_v to_o work_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n or_o willing_o choose_v what_o they_o can_v choose_v which_o have_v a_o inward_a beginning_n incline_v to_o that_o motion_n whereby_o it_o be_v drive_v by_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o to_o do_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o to_o do_v of_o necessity_n be_v not_o contrary_a one_o to_o another_o for_o they_o may_v be_v join_v together_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o our_o will_n which_o of_o necessity_n embrace_v felicity_n yet_o it_o embrace_v it_o not_o against_o his_o will_n or_o by_o compulsion_n but_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o glad_o neither_o be_v it_o possible_a compel_v the_o will_n can_v be_v compel_v that_o the_o will_n shall_v be_v compel_v to_o will_v that_o which_o it_o will_v not_o yea_o augustine_n think_v it_o to_o be_v so_o absurd_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v will_v that_o which_o he_o will_v not_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v that_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v hot_a without_o heat_n wicked_a the_o necessity_n of_o sin_v be_v not_o absolute_a in_o the_o wicked_a but_o yet_o that_o necessity_n whereby_o the_o wicked_a be_v say_v to_o sin_n be_v not_o absolute_a and_o perfect_a so_o as_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o for_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n come_v that_o necessity_n be_v straitwaie_o loose_v wherefore_o augustine_n say_v faith_n augustine_n say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o nature_n to_o be_v able_a to_o have_v faith_n that_o it_o be_v of_o nature_n to_o be_v able_a to_o have_v faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n but_o to_o have_v they_o indeed_o be_v altogether_o the_o gift_n of_o grace_n for_o that_o power_n or_o ability_n break_v not_o forth_o into_o act_n unless_o grace_n be_v give_v from_o god_n herein_o augustine_n agree_v with_o the_o pelagian_n that_o to_o be_v able_a be_v of_o nature_n pelagian_n the_o opinion_n of_o augustine_n compare_v with_o the_o pelagian_n but_o this_o augustine_n add_v which_o pelagius_n do_v not_o allow_v that_o to_o will_v well_o and_o to_o live_v uprightlie_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o grace_n only_o but_o i_o think_v that_o as_o touch_v this_o power_n of_o nature_n there_o must_v be_v make_v a_o distinction_n for_o if_o they_o mean_v this_o that_o our_o nature_n be_v so_o make_v of_o god_n as_o neither_o faith_n nor_o hope_n nor_o charity_n do_v strive_v with_o the_o same_o if_o they_o be_v give_v of_o god_n but_o rather_o accomplish_v it_o make_v it_o perfect_a and_o adorn_v it_o i_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v true_a that_o they_o say_v nature_n what_o manner_n of_o power_n unto_o faith_n be_v in_o nature_n but_o if_o they_o will_v have_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n to_o signify_v some_o strength_n of_o the_o same_o whereby_o it_o can_v challenge_v to_o itself_o these_o thing_n i_o yield_v not_o to_o they_o in_o any_o wise_a for_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a and_o damnable_a opinion_n we_o say_v therefore_o that_o the_o will_n of_o man_n have_v respect_n both_o unto_o good_a and_o unto_o evil_n evil_a how_o the_o will_n of_o man_n have_v respect_n unto_o good_a and_o evil_a but_o after_o
verse_n 24._o that_o the_o substance_n of_o hierico_n become_v accurse_v and_o yet_o what_o soever_o be_v there_o brass_n iron_n silver_n or_o gold_n all_o that_o be_v they_o to_o bring_v to_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o a_o field_n by_o any_o hap_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v unto_o idol_n the_o same_o augustine_n judge_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o grow_v therein_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o beléever_n 1._o psal_n 24._o 1._o for_o the_o earth_n say_v he_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o and_o unto_o timothy_n it_o be_v say_v 4._o 1._o tim._n 4_o 4._o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a so_o it_o be_v receive_v of_o we_o with_o thanksgiving_a and_o prayer_n else_o shall_v we_o blame_v paul_n who_o be_v many_o day_n in_o athens_n and_o undoubted_o feed_v of_o the_o fruit_n and_o commodity_n of_o the_o athenien_n field_n 16._o acts._n 37_o 16._o which_o field_n nevertheless_o be_v consecrate_v unto_o minerva_n but_o if_o there_o shall_v now_o be_v fruit_n and_o those_o consecrate_a &_o appoint_v to_o the_o special_a use_n or_o service_n of_o idol_n the_o christian_n ought_v to_o refrain_v lest_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o communicate_v with_o impiety_n but_o because_o man_n in_o old_a time_n be_v accustom_v sometime_o to_o sacrifice_v unto_o fountain_n and_o river_n for_o that_o they_o attribute_v unto_o they_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o divinity_n i_o know_v not_o what_o and_o therefore_o they_o throw_v into_o they_o sometime_o either_o the_o sacrifice_a flesh_n or_o the_o inward_o of_o the_o same_o it_o be_v doubt_v whether_o christian_n might_n use_v those_o water_n afterward_o augustine_n answer_v yes_o indeed_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o know_v say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v very_o many_o which_o do_v sacrifice_n unto_o the_o sun_n yet_o fear_v we_o not_o to_o use_v the_o light_n of_o the_o same_o and_o to_o enjoy_v the_o beam_n thereof_o yea_o and_o there_o be_v find_v infidel_n which_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o the_o wind_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o we_o use_v the_o wind_n in_o our_o sail_v 53_o last_o of_o all_o way_n the_o case_n of_o one_o which_o iourny_v by_o the_o way_n publicola_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o a_o case_n concern_v a_o certain_a man_n which_o pass_v through_o a_o desert_n and_o the_o same_o man_n be_v very_o hungry_a happen_v upon_o a_o church_n or_o chapel_n of_o idol_n where_o by_o chance_n find_v certain_a flesh_n set_v ready_a he_o demand_v whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o eat_v if_o he_o profess_v christian_n religion_n augustine_n answer_v because_o it_o may_v be_v that_o that_o same_o be_v not_o sacrifice_v flesh_n but_o be_v leave_v there_o of_o stranger_n by_o chance_n which_o turn_v in_o thither_o either_o to_o dine_v or_o sup_v therefore_o see_v it_o be_v not_o apparent_a that_o those_o be_v sacrifice_v thing_n he_o that_o be_v hungry_a may_v use_v they_o further_o as_o if_o he_o have_v not_o satisfy_v himself_o he_o make_v this_o distinction_n either_o he_o know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o the_o flesh_n be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n or_o he_o know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o it_o be_v not_o or_o else_o he_o doubt_v and_o he_o add_v if_o he_o doubt_v or_o else_o know_v for_o a_o certainty_n that_o it_o be_v no_o sacrifice_a flesh_n he_o may_v eat_v lawful_o but_o if_o it_o shall_v certeinlie_o appear_v that_o the_o flesh_n be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n let_v he_o abstain_v in_o respect_n of_o christian_n piety_n here_o will_v i_o not_o willing_o subscribe_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o augustine_n 4_o 1._o cor._n 8._o 4_o for_o i_o see_v no_o cause_n why_o he_o may_v bid_v a_o christian_n man_n that_o be_v hungry_a to_o refrain_v from_o this_o kind_n of_o meat_n for_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n he_o have_v not_o there_o any_o weak_a brethren_n who_o he_o may_v offend_v neither_o yet_o do_v he_o communicate_v with_o devil_n see_v no_o sacrifice_n be_v there_o in_o hand_n neither_o do_v he_o set_v forth_o unto_o the_o infidel_n his_o liberty_n to_o be_v condemn_v or_o blaspheme_v which_o thing_n be_v the_o just_a and_o only_a cause_n why_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v the_o eat_n of_o thing_n offer_v unto_o idol_n therefore_o i_o will_v judge_v that_o in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v free_a to_o use_v that_o kind_n of_o meat_n for_o 1._o psal_n 24_o 1._o the_o earth_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o all_o that_o be_v therein_o what_o be_v to_o tempt_v god_n 54_o to_o tempt_v be_v nothing_o else_o way_n in._n 1._o co._n 10_o look_v part_n 1._o pla_fw-la 8._o art_n 15._o look_v in_o gen._n 24._o at_o the_o end_n god_n tempt_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n but_o to_o make_v proof_n wherefore_o they_o tempt_v god_n which_o will_v have_v trial_n of_o his_o power_n and_o will_n and_o this_o be_v do_v two_o way_n because_o otherwhile_o there_o be_v no_o lack_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o we_o have_v need_n of_o but_o we_o disdain_v to_o use_v those_o accustom_a and_o familiar_a thing_n and_o we_o will_v be_v holpen_v by_o mean_n exquisite_a and_o unheard_a of_o as_o if_o one_o that_o will_v not_o put_v on_o a_o garment_n which_o he_o have_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n shall_v pray_v similitude_n a_o similitude_n that_o god_n by_o some_o strange_a mean_n will_v drive_v away_o the_o cold_a from_o he_o as_o there_o be_v every_o where_o to_o be_v find_v who_o not_o content_a with_o the_o miracle_n rehearse_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n will_v now_o have_v some_o other_o to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o faith_n according_a to_o this_o sense_n christ_n answer_v sathan_n when_o he_o persuade_v he_o to_o throw_v himself_o down_o headlong_o from_o the_o top_n of_o the_o temple_n 7._o matth._n 4_o 7._o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o way_n to_o go_v down_o be_v manifest_o know_v unto_o i_o i_o have_v step_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o cast_v myself_o down_o headlong_o if_o i_o do_v it_o i_o shall_v tempt_v god_n 55_o another_o kind_n there_o be_v of_o this_o temptation_n when_o we_o lack_v necessary_a thing_n but_o yet_o nevertheless_o have_v a_o promise_n and_o godliness_n do_v persuade_v we_o to_o attend_v patient_o but_o many_o refuse_v to_o tarry_v the_o lord_n help_v yea_o they_o dare_v prescribe_v a_o time_n unto_o god_n and_o a_o mean_a also_o whereby_o they_o will_v be_v holpen_v of_o he_o this_o rise_v through_o the_o unpatientnesse_n of_o adversity_n which_o happen_v oftentimes_o with_o our_o great_a destruction_n wherefore_o the_o scripture_n not_o without_o cause_n exhort_v we_o every_o where_o to_o patience_n tertullian_n tertullian_n tertullian_n also_o and_o cyprian_n have_v very_o notable_o write_v cyprian_a cyprian_a concern_v patience_n none_o of_o we_o ought_v to_o prescribe_v unto_o god_n either_o the_o mean_n or_o the_o time_n of_o help_n he_o best_o know_v the_o just_a cause_n and_o he_o for_o good_a consideration_n defer_v his_o gift_n the_o first_o be_v reason_n the_o 1._o reason_n for_o that_o our_o sin_n shall_v not_o lurk_v in_o the_o mind_n for_o unless_o we_o be_v defer_v unpatience_n will_v not_o bewray_v itself_o wherewith_o otherwise_o the_o hart_n be_v infect_v which_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o we_o we_o will_v live_v more_o careless_a neither_o will_v we_o pray_v to_o have_v it_o take_v from_o us._n reason_n the_o 2._o reason_n further_n if_o thing_n necessary_a shall_v forthwith_o come_v unto_o we_o perhaps_o we_o will_v not_o attribute_v the_o same_o unto_o god_n but_o either_o unto_o chance_n or_o else_o unto_o our_o own_o strength_n and_o endeavour_n wherefore_o god_n have_v appoint_v that_o when_o he_o defer_v his_o help_n which_o he_o afterward_o give_v at_o the_o time_n prescribe_v we_o may_v acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o deliverance_n reason_n the_o 3._o reason_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o understand_v that_o help_n be_v come_v unto_o we_o not_o by_o our_o own_o appointment_n but_o by_o he_o and_o affliction_n be_v recompense_v with_o the_o pleasantness_n of_o delaieng_v for_o most_o pleasant_a be_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v long_a look_v for_o neither_o do_v god_n demand_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v weigh_v his_o gift_n with_o a_o right_a consideration_n lest_o they_o shall_v become_v vile_a and_o thus_o we_o must_v beware_v of_o this_o heinous_a crime_n that_o we_o through_o unpatience_n do_v not_o tempt_v god_n for_o by_o such_o mean_n man_n either_o believe_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o thing_n or_o else_o they_o be_v in_o doubt_n whether_o he_o take_v care_n of_o they_o and_o when_o help_n be_v defer_v at_o length_n they_o spew_v out_o their_o anger_n and_o pour_v forth_o their_o hatred_n which_o they_o miserable_a
outward_a service_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o ceremony_n beside_o a_o inward_a worship_v wherefore_o it_o be_v right_o say_v 13._o deut._n 6_o 13._o fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o moreover_o christ_n do_v fight_v with_o this_o place_n against_o the_o devil_n say_v 10_o matth._n 4_o 10_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o thou_o shall_v serve_v whereupon_o augustine_n devise_v a_o difference_n between_o religious_a worshipping_n call_v that_o which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a to_o do_v unto_o creature_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o 49._o epistle_n ad_fw-la deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la and_o against_o faustus_n the_o 20._o book_n and_o 21._o chapter_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o service_n which_o be_v only_o do_v unto_o the_o godhead_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o same_o can_v in_o one_o word_n be_v express_v of_o the_o latin_n also_o in_o the_o 20._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o first_o chapter_n he_o write_v very_o much_o of_o this_o matter_n sure_o for_o my_o part_n i_o have_v not_o read_v of_o any_o such_o distinction_n in_o the_o father_n before_o augustine_n time_n and_o certeinlie_o laurentius_n valla_n upon_o matthew_n the_o 4._o chapter_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n as_o concern_v the_o word_n because_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v as_o well_o to_o serve_v god_n as_o man_n and_o he_o allege_v a_o place_n out_o of_o xenophon_n where_o a_o husband_n say_v that_o he_o be_v ready_a with_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v his_o life_n to_o redeem_v that_o his_o wife_n shall_v not_o serve_v any_o man_n in_o which_o place_n he_o use_v the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o the_o wife_n say_v that_o she_o will_v redeem_v with_o her_o life_n that_o her_o husband_n may_v not_o serve_v where_o the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v and_o suidas_n say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o serve_v for_o reward_n and_o undoubted_o according_a to_o this_o sense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v interpret_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o where_o it_o be_v command_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o servile_a work_n do_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o greek_a text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d among_o the_o greek_n signify_v a_o handmaid_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o manseruant_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o reward_n whereupon_o in_o time_n past_a latrones_fw-la be_v call_v mercenary_a soldier_n who_o some_o i_o know_v not_o how_o well_o have_v think_v so_o to_o be_v call_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v laterones_n as_o they_o that_o shall_v guard_v the_o person_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o luke_n it_o be_v write_v you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n 13._o luk._n 16_o 13._o where_o for_o serve_v the_o verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v write_v as_o common_a unto_o both_o the_o service_n paul_n also_o call_v himself_o in_o many_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d christi_fw-la 1._o rom._n 1_o 1._o phil._n 1_o 1._o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o act_n he_o say_v that_o he_o continue_v among_o the_o ephesian_n 19_o acts._n 20_o 19_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d serve_v god._n and_o unto_o the_o colossian_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v 24._o col._n 3_o 24._o serve_v god_n but_o augustine_n himself_o seem_v not_o constant_o to_o have_v retain_v that_o difference_n for_o in_o the_o 94._o question_n upon_o exodus_fw-la he_o handle_v these_o word_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n if_o thou_o serve_v other_o god_n they_o will_v make_v thou_o fall_v to_o sin_n in_o this_o place_n say_v he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 33._o verse_n 33._o for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v due_a unto_o god_n himself_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o respect_n that_o he_o be_v our_o god_n 13_o but_o pass_v over_o the_o word_n god_n one_o manner_n of_o honour_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n and_o another_o unto_o god_n let_v we_o rather_o deal_v with_o the_o matter_n itself_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o honour_n which_o we_o attribute_v unto_o god_n be_v not_o that_o which_o we_o give_v unto_o man_n for_o that_o be_v the_o high_a honour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o one_o only_a god_n and_o it_o chéeflie_o consist_v in_o these_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o repose_v in_o he_o all_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o we_o account_v he_o for_o our_o chief_a happiness_n by_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o without_o add_v of_o any_o condition_n but_o even_o simple_o and_o absolute_o but_o unto_o prince_n we_o must_v submit_v ourselves_o and_o all_o that_o be_v we_o yet_o so_o as_o they_o command_v we_o not_o to_o do_v thing_n repugnant_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o unto_o god_n we_o be_v subject_a without_o any_o manner_n of_o condition_n or_o exception_n furthermore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o simple_o and_o absolute_o and_o that_o we_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v as_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n in_o give_v he_o thanks_o for_o all_o the_o benefit_n which_o daily_o do_v happen_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o must_v declare_v his_o honour_n by_o outward_a call_n upon_o he_o also_o some_o honour_n be_v due_a unto_o the_o excellent_a creature_n such_o as_o be_v prince_n prophet_n and_o godly_a man_n wherefore_o augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 22._o book_n and_o 10._o chapter_n write_v that_o those_o be_v to_o be_v honour_v in_o the_o right_n of_o charity_n and_o society_n for_o we_o hold_v they_o for_o our_o fellow_n and_o brethren_n and_o therefore_o we_o love_v they_o we_o wish_v well_o unto_o they_o and_o we_o joy_n with_o they_o in_o their_o good_a hap_n moreover_o in_o his_o book_n of_o true_a religion_n 25._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o we_o must_v honour_v excellent_a man_n in_o respect_n of_o imitation_n by_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o their_o good_a life_n when_o as_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o religion_n they_o must_v not_o be_v worship_v and_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o honour_n paul_n write_v say_v in_o give_v honour_n go_v one_o before_o another_o 10_o rom._n 12._o 10_o again_o as_o brethren_n they_o be_v to_o be_v holpen_v with_o mutual_a good_a turn_n further_o in_o the_o church_n the_o saint_n be_v only_o commend_v and_o the_o noble_a gift_n which_o god_n bestow_v upon_o they_o be_v celebrate_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n 1._o luke_n 16_o 1._o as_o christ_n allow_v of_o the_o faithful_a and_o diligent_a servant_n which_o right_o and_o prudentlie_o behave_v himself_o in_o order_v of_o the_o money_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v but_o and_o if_o so_o be_v they_o will_v use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o this_o kind_n of_o worship_v we_o will_v that_o they_o may_v retain_v it_o so_o that_o they_o know_v the_o same_o distinction_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o have_v invent_v also_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o most_o excellent_a creature_n namely_o unto_o marie_n and_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n a_o difference_n of_o honour_n we_o disallow_v not_o but_o those_o thing_n which_o apperteine_a only_a to_o the_o high_a god_n we_o can_v not_o suffer_v to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o creature_n which_o thing_n out_o of_o doubt_n they_o do_v for_o they_o prostrate_v themselves_o before_o image_n they_o light_a wax_n candle_n to_o they_o and_o at_o they_o they_o invocate_v those_o dead_a man_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o augustine_n in_o many_o place_n take_v away_o from_o all_o creature_n church_n priesthood_n sacrifice_n and_o altar_n but_o that_o prayer_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_n no_o man_n doubt_v yet_o the_o papist_n have_v communicate_v all_o these_o thing_n not_o only_o unto_o man_n depart_v this_o life_n but_o also_o unto_o image_n and_o picture_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o do_n they_o use_v many_o sophistication_n when_o as_o god_n notwithstanding_o plain_o speak_v and_o forbid_v that_o image_n shall_v in_o any_o wise_a be_v make_v unto_o religious_a worship_v and_o that_o which_o he_o have_v absolute_o speak_v and_o command_v must_v not_o be_v cunning_o shift_v off_o by_o man_n craftiness_n 14_o but_o it_o be_v good_a to_o
he_o can_v make_v good_a but_o as_o concern_v the_o everlasting_a punishment_n because_o those_o do_v hurt_v for_o evermore_o every_o man_n do_v justly_o suffer_v they_o according_a to_o his_o evil_a desert_n no_o man_n say_v he_o suffer_v those_o punishment_n for_o a_o other_o man_n fault_n and_o even_o this_o also_o he_o write_v in_o his_o first_o book_n the_o 10._o chapter_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n say_v he_o but_o in_o this_o life_n one_o be_v afflict_v for_o a_o other_o and_o against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_n the_o sixth_o book_n &_o 12._o chap._n he_o distinguish_v the_o state_n of_o the_o people_n &_o some_o he_o say_v be_v regenerate_v in_o christ_n but_o that_o other_o be_v not_o yet_o regenerate_v regennerate_a man_n distinguish_v into_o regennerate_a and_o not_o regennerate_a and_o of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o regenerate_v their_o sin_n be_v visit_v upon_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n to_o wit_n upon_o all_o the_o posterity_n and_o he_o allude_v unto_o original_a sin_n which_o from_o adam_n be_v spread_v over_o all_o posterity_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v why_o then_o punish_v he_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n the_o same_o father_n answer_v in_o the_o 42._o question_n upon_o deuteronomie_n number_n the_o number_n of_o seven_o betoken_v a_o complete_a number_n because_o three_o being_n join_v with_o the_o number_n of_o four_o make_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o which_o be_v a_o complete_a number_n so_o as_o by_o name_v the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o every_o generation_n which_o kind_n of_o speech_n amos_n use_v 3._o amos._n 1_o 3._o for_o three_o wickedness_n say_v he_o &_o for_o four_o i_o will_v not_o be_v turn_v augustine_n therefore_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n concern_v the_o punish_n of_o the_o father_n iniquity_n upon_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n of_o they_o which_o be_v not_o regenerate_v for_o the_o law_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o they_o which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n but_o ezechiel_n and_o jeremie_n speak_v of_o man_n which_o be_v bear_v anew_o and_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o regeneration_n to_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n but_o man_n which_o be_v regenerate_v shall_v be_v judge_v every_o one_o after_o his_o own_o merit_n and_o not_o according_a to_o other_o man_n sin_n and_o so_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o soul_n which_o sin_v the_o same_o shall_v die_v but_o before_o regeneration_n original_a sin_n infect_v and_o destroy_v all_o posterity_n 44_o this_o distinction_n of_o augustine_n i_o disallow_v not_o yet_o doubt_v i_o whether_o it_o be_v sufficient_o apply_v unto_o the_o sense_n of_o ezechiel_n and_o jeremie_n both_o those_o prophet_n write_v the_o selfsame_o word_n thing_n ezechiel_n and_o jeremie_n be_v in_o sundry_a place_n write_v both_o one_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v eat_v sour_a grape_n and_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o the_o one_o be_v in_o jewrie_n and_o the_o other_o be_v lead_v away_o into_o babylon_n which_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n that_o they_o speak_v both_o with_o one_o spirit_n but_o augustine_n say_v that_o the_o exposition_n of_o ezechiel_n must_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o 31._o chapter_n of_o jeremie_n for_o there_o it_o be_v add_v after_o those_o word_n behold_v the_o day_n will_v come_v that_o i_o will_v make_v a_o new_a covenant_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o all_o that_o whole_a place_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o regeneration_n so_o that_o by_o these_o word_n of_o jeremie_n the_o say_n of_o ezechiel_n must_v be_v interpret_v concern_v the_o regenerate_a by_o this_o mean_n that_o father_n think_v that_o the_o question_n be_v answer_v but_o i_o when_o i_o more_o diligent_o consider_v of_o that_o chapter_n of_o ezechiel_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o pain_n and_o affliction_n of_o this_o life_n for_o wherefore_o do_v the_o people_n complain_v say_v the_o father_n do_v eat_v sour_a grape_n and_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n do_v they_o complain_v of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n no_o very_o but_o because_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o captive_a into_o babylon_n and_o there_o live_v in_o bondage_n they_o complain_v that_o god_n do_v deal_v over_o hardly_o that_o whereas_o their_o father_n have_v be_v idolater_n yet_o they_o which_o have_v not_o offend_v shall_v be_v punish_v concern_v those_o punishment_n the_o people_n lament_v so_o as_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o the_o prophet_n shall_v answer_v for_o those_o thing_n the_o soul_n of_o the_o father_n be_v i_o and_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o son_n be_v i_o the_o soul_n that_o sin_v the_o same_o shall_v die_v wherefore_o these_o thing_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o punishment_n of_o this_o life_n albeit_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o they_o may_v be_v transfer_v also_o unto_o spiritual_a punishment_n but_o that_o be_v not_o but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o argue_v a_o minori_fw-la ad_fw-la maius_fw-la that_o be_v from_o the_o less_o to_o the_o great_a which_o be_v after_o this_o sort_n god_n have_v not_o altogether_o lay_v temporal_a punishment_n upon_o the_o innocent_n for_o other_o sin_n therefore_o much_o less_o the_o spiritual_a and_o everlasting_a pain_n jerom._n jerom._n 45_o jerom_n when_o he_o interprete_v ezechiel_n have_v a_o solution_n the_o which_o afterward_o augustine_n also_o follow_v as_o we_o will_v declare_v when_o the_o place_n serve_v but_o the_o interpreter_n do_v vary_v because_o the_o matter_n be_v obscure_a and_o thereof_o come_v a_o difficulty_n because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n afflict_v some_o for_o other_o man_n cause_n 25._o gen._n 9_o 25._o for_o where_o as_o cham_n have_v disclose_v the_o shame_n of_o his_o father_n noah_n yet_o be_v the_o curse_n transfer_v unto_o chenaan_n his_o son_n 1._o gen._n 19_o 1._o and_o when_o the_o sodomite_n have_v gréevouslie_o sin_v the_o child_n also_o together_o with_o the_o father_n be_v burn_v again_o when_o david_n have_v commit_v adultery_n 15._o 2._o sa._n 12_o 15._o god_n cause_v that_o the_o child_n beget_v in_o that_o adultery_n shall_v die_v wherefore_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o obscure_a jerom_n indeed_o bring_v his_o own_o exposition_n but_o yet_o he_o show_v what_o other_o man_n think_v concern_v this_o question_n first_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o which_o understand_v that_o place_n of_o the_o law_n namely_o that_o god_n do_v persecute_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n unto_o the_o three_o &_o four_o generation_n to_o be_v allegoricallie_o speak_v touch_v every_o particular_a soul_n or_o man_n that_o sin_v for_o they_o be_v certain_a rash_a onset_n impulsion_n and_o forcement_n unto_o evil_n or_o as_o other_o say_v first_o motion_v afterward_o follow_v deliberation_n as_o when_o one_o have_v determine_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o will_v do_v naught_o thirdlie_o when_o this_o determination_n be_v perform_v fourthly_a there_o follow_v a_o glorieng_n in_o wickedness_n when_o one_o do_v satisfy_v and_o well_o please_v himself_o in_o sin_n so_o after_o a_o sort_n there_o be_v reckon_v four_o generation_n but_o god_n be_v so_o merciful_a that_o in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o generation_n that_o be_v in_o rash_a onset_n and_o deliberation_n he_o be_v silent_a and_o make_v as_o though_o he_o know_v not_o but_o the_o three_o and_o the_o four_o that_o be_v the_o commit_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o glorieng_n therein_o he_o punish_v when_o as_o both_o a_o man_n do_v evil_a and_o glori_v in_o his_o sin_n and_o will_v not_o repent_v wherefore_o they_o say_v that_o god_n revenge_v upon_o the_o branch_n not_o upon_o the_o root_n for_o a_o man_n as_o they_o think_v if_o he_o neither_o do_v evil_a nor_o yet_o boast_v of_o evil_a may_v be_v save_v although_o otherwise_o he_o as_o well_o lu_v as_o deliberate_v to_o do_v evil_a neither_o do_v they_o otherwise_o interpret_v paul_n to_o timothy_n when_o he_o say_v 15_o 1._o tim._n 2_o 15_o that_o a_o woman_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o procreation_n of_o child_n if_o so_o be_v she_o abide_v firm_a in_o the_o faith_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v her_o soul_n shall_v be_v save_v if_o she_o work_v well_o although_o she_o have_v naughty_a motion_n and_o cogitation_n this_o interpretation_n i_o allow_v not_o first_o because_o it_o be_v allegorical_a see_v god_n especial_o in_o the_o law_n speak_v plain_o and_o manifest_o secondlie_o for_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n certainty_n allegory_n have_v no_o certainty_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v turn_v to_o allegory_n will_v become_v altogether_o uncerteine_a last_o because_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o be_v speak_v for_o those_o forcement_n and_o
the_o former_a virtue_n for_o those_o thing_n be_v most_o pure_a have_v no_o need_n of_o moderation_n it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o temperance_n be_v place_v in_o this_o latter_a kind_n and_o yet_o have_v it_o not_o place_n about_o all_o corporal_a thing_n but_o in_o those_o only_a which_o belong_v unto_o the_o sense_n of_o touch_v but_o with_o touch_v thou_o must_v also_o understand_v taste_v for_o those_o two_o sense_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la be_v very_o near_a one_o to_o another_o wherefore_o temperance_n shall_v be_v a_o mediocrity_n in_o pleasure_n of_o meat_n and_o drink_v and_o fleshlie_o desire_v but_o wherefore_o do_v it_o not_o also_o moderate_a the_o pleasure_n which_o come_v by_o the_o sight_n and_o by_o the_o hear_n because_o the_o desire_n of_o those_o pleasure_n be_v not_o so_o great_a and_o vehement_a as_o it_o be_v of_o these_o neither_o be_v those_o so_o hurtful_a as_o these_o be_v for_o by_o these_o if_o they_o be_v immoderate_a man_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n degenerate_a into_o brute_n beast_n but_o so_o do_v they_o not_o through_o sound_n smell_n or_o colour_n but_o admit_v that_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n also_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o other_o sense_n measure_v be_v exceed_v and_o that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o some_o virtue_n that_o kind_n of_o excess_n be_v never_o account_v or_o call_v intemperance_n but_o they_o which_o so_o sin_n be_v accuse_v of_o a_o certain_a other_o sin_n not_o of_o intemperance_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o virtue_n of_o temperance_n have_v place_n as_o well_o in_o pleasure_n as_o in_o displeasure_n whether_o of_o these_o affection_n be_v the_o more_o frequent_a matter_n thereof_o aristotle_n say_v that_o those_o be_v pleasure_n for_o in_o the_o suppress_n of_o they_o we_o have_v great_a labour_n and_o unto_o the_o excess_n of_o pleasure_n we_o seem_v to_o be_v drive_v by_o nature_n neither_o be_v it_o so_o hard_a a_o matter_n to_o resist_v displeasure_n as_o it_o be_v to_o temper_v a_o man_n self_n from_o pleasure_n virtue_n in_o very_a deed_n be_v chéeflie_o conversant_a about_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v difficult_a furthermore_o the_o grief_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o belong_v to_o this_o virtue_n arise_v of_o the_o defect_n or_o absence_n of_o pleasure_n but_o it_o be_v far_o more_o easy_a to_o abide_v the_o desire_n of_o a_o pleasure_n that_o be_v absent_a than_o not_o to_o enjoy_v a_o pleasure_n that_o be_v present_a the_o defect_n or_o want_n in_o this_o matter_n have_v no_o name_n a_o reason_n be_v bring_v because_o there_o be_v not_o many_o nay_o rather_o there_o be_v very_o few_o which_o do_v altogether_o shun_v pleasure_n those_o thing_n which_o do_v seldom_o happen_v or_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n never_o see_v do_v easy_o want_v a_o name_n but_o yet_o say_v aristotle_n they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v astonish_v nevertheless_o we_o must_v think_v that_o they_o be_v proper_o so_o call_v for_o that_o word_n do_v also_o signify_v they_o which_o be_v oppress_v with_o the_o force_n of_o sickness_n have_v no_o sense_n and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o some_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o sickness_n or_o some_o dissolution_n of_o the_o sinew_n feel_v no_o taste_n of_o pleasure_n and_o fleshlie_o lust_n of_o mercy_n and_o the_o affect_v call_v nemesis_n 46_o but_o mercy_n be_v a_o grief_n of_o the_o mind_n 1._o in_o judg._n 8_o verse_n 1._o which_o we_o conceive_v for_o other_o man_n adversity_n or_o as_o cicero_n say_v it_o be_v a_o grief_n take_v for_o another_o man_n misery_n aristotle_n teach_v that_o mercy_n be_v stir_v up_o if_o we_o see_v any_o that_o do_v suffer_v gréevous_a thing_n which_o they_o have_v not_o deserve_v for_o if_o that_o the_o wicked_a do_v suffer_v just_a punishment_n thereof_o arise_v no_o mercy_n and_o beside_o he_o think_v that_o those_o mishap_n whereby_o we_o be_v move_v with_o mercy_n be_v cruel_a otherwise_o if_o they_o be_v but_o light_n we_o will_v be_v move_v but_o little_a or_o nothing_o to_o conclude_v that_o those_o be_v move_v with_o mercy_n which_o consider_v that_o such_o thing_n may_v happen_v to_o themselves_o or_o to_o some_o other_o of_o they_o whereupon_o it_o be_v think_v that_o they_o which_o enjoy_v prosperity_n and_o do_v judge_v themselves_o bless_v be_v not_o incline_v to_o mercy_n nay_o rather_o that_o they_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o triumph_v over_o poor_a wretch_n as_o of_o those_o who_o they_o think_v be_v not_o able_a to_o hurt_v they_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o remoove_v this_o affect_v from_o desperate_a and_o wretched_a man_n because_o they_o fear_v that_o nothing_o can_v happen_v unto_o they_o more_o miserable_a than_o they_o have_v and_o thus_o in_o that_o desperate_a fortune_n they_o seem_v to_o have_v become_v senseless_a howbeit_o if_o this_o be_v true_a some_o man_n may_v doubt_v how_o mercy_n can_v be_v ascribe_v unto_o god_n since_o he_o without_o controversy_n be_v the_o most_o bless_a and_o that_o nothing_o be_v able_a to_o hurt_v he_o but_o héereunto_o we_o answer_v that_o mercy_n be_v not_o proper_o attribute_v unto_o god_n but_o by_o a_o metaphor_n take_v of_o man_n because_o he_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o merciful_a man_n have_v be_v wont_v to_o do_v for_o they_o doubtless_o do_v help_v the_o afflict_a the_o very_a which_o thing_n also_o the_o godly_a do_v howbeit_o i_o will_v not_o herein_o subscribe_v unto_o aristotle_n that_o mercy_n be_v not_o to_o be_v show_v to_o they_o which_o do_v justly_o suffer_v punishment_n 11._o 1._o sa._n 25_o 11._o for_o samuel_n mourn_v a_o long_a time_n for_o saul_n who_o be_v reject_v of_o god_n not_o undeseruedlie_o but_o most_o justly_o and_o no_o less_o do_v christ_n mourn_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n 41._o luk._n 19_o 41._o which_o without_o doubt_n hang_v over_o the_o head_n of_o that_o city_n not_o without_o desert_n but_o for_o just_a cause_n neither_o yet_o do_v we_o allow_v that_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v of_o some_o do_v not_o stir_v up_o mercy_n but_o that_o only_a calamity_n and_o adversity_n do_v the_o same_o for_o godly_a man_n be_v no_o less_o agréeve_v for_o other_o man_n chance_n when_o they_o fall_v into_o great_a wickedness_n than_o when_o they_o be_v oppress_v with_o unhappy_a fortune_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o deny_v that_o mercy_n be_v a_o good_a affect_v when_o it_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o reason_n especial_o since_o the_o lord_n have_v pronounce_v with_o his_o mouth_n 7._o matt._n 5_o 7._o that_o bless_a be_v the_o merciful_a because_o they_o also_o shall_v obtain_v mercy_n 47_o a_o other_o affect_v which_o arise_v of_o sadness_n and_o grief_n be_v that_o which_o they_o call_v nemesis_n the_o same_o have_v no_o latin_a word_n albeit_o of_o some_o it_o be_v call_v indignatio_fw-la that_o be_v indignation_n which_o yet_o by_o that_o word_n do_v not_o express_v all_o that_o affect_v for_o indignation_n extend_v further_a than_o do_v nemesis_n nemesis_n a_o definition_n of_o nemesis_n but_o omit_v the_o word_n we_o will_v thus_o define_v the_o thing_n nemesis_n be_v a_o sadness_n take_v for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o wicked_a man_n because_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v unworthy_a of_o that_o fortune_n just_a and_o godly_a man_n have_v sometime_o this_o affect_v reign_v in_o they_o david_n when_o he_o see_v the_o ungodlie_a flourish_n 1._o psal_n 73_o 2._o abac._n 1_o 1._o say_v my_o foot_n have_v well_o near_o slip_v also_o abacuk_n take_v it_o gréevouslie_o that_o the_o wicked_a be_v of_o so_o great_a power_n that_o they_o oppress_v the_o saint_n 1._o job._n 21_o 1._o and_o devour_v the_o just_a and_o job_n seem_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o complain_v unto_o his_o friend_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n plutarch_n plutarch_n furthermore_o plutarch_n in_o the_o life_n of_o homer_n praise_v this_o affect_v and_o by_o reason_n thereof_o he_o far_o prefer_v the_o peripatetik_n in_o dispute_v of_o the_o affect_n before_o the_o stoic_n and_o especial_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o homer_n who_o affirm_v that_o at_o the_o length_n god_n will_v angerlie_a punish_v after_o that_o the_o wicked_a have_v a_o certain_a while_n floorish_v howbeit_o this_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o man_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v not_o grieve_v through_o this_o affect_n for_o that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v any_o loss_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o wicked_a or_o because_o that_o they_o by_o their_o power_n can_v hurt_v they_o for_o if_o they_o be_v by_o this_o mean_v grieve_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v trouble_v with_o nemesis_n but_o rather_o with_o fear_n but_o nemesis_n be_v then_o when_o a_o man_n be_v move_v of_o a_o stomach_n and_o for_o that_o he_o hate_v the_o unworthiness_n of_o the_o person_n 48_o this_o affect_v in_o two_o thing_n communicate_v with_o
beginning_n there_o be_v sundry_a opinion_n some_o think_v that_o man_n when_o they_o behold_v the_o sundry_a motion_n of_o wander_a and_o fix_a star_n invent_v dance_v whereby_o the_o variety_n of_o motion_n may_v be_v represent_v other_o think_v that_o danse_v rather_o come_v of_o religion_n because_o among_o the_o old_a ethnik_n there_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n no_o holy_a service_n wherein_o be_v not_o hop_v and_o dance_v for_o they_o lead_v their_o danse_v from_o the_o left_a part_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o the_o right_n whereby_o they_o may_v resemble_v the_o motion_n of_o heaven_n from_o the_o east_n unto_o the_o west_n afterward_o they_o return_v from_o the_o right_n to_o the_o left_a virgil._n virgil._n to_o express_v the_o course_n of_o the_o wander_a star_n which_o perhaps_o virgil_n signify_v when_o he_o say_v instaurántque_fw-la choros_fw-la mix_v ique_fw-la altaria_fw-la circum_fw-la that_o be_v and_o they_o be_v mix_v together_o renew_v their_o danse_v compass_v about_o the_o altar_n yea_o and_o the_o dance_a priest_n of_o mars_n mars_n the_o dance_a priest_n of_o mars_n be_v have_v in_o great_a honour_n among_o the_o roman_n some_o there_o be_v also_o which_o refer_v the_o beginning_n of_o dance_v to_o hiero_n a_o tyrant_n of_o sicilia_n tyrant_n the_o origiginall_a of_o dance_v attribute_v to_o hiero_n the_o tyrant_n for_o they_o say_v that_o he_o to_o establish_v his_o tyranny_n forbid_v the_o people_n to_o speak_v one_o to_o another_o wherefore_o man_n in_o sicilia_n begin_v to_o express_v their_o meaning_n and_o thought_n by_o beck_n and_o gesture_n of_o the_o body_n and_o that_o afterward_o do_v turn_v to_o a_o use_n and_o custom_n but_o whatsoever_o this_o thing_n be_v dansing_n in_o the_o old_a time_n be_v not_o against_o religion_n although_o afterward_o they_o be_v apply_v to_o public_a mirth_n beside_o there_o be_v another_o kind_n of_o dance_v whereby_o young_a man_n be_v train_v in_o warlike_a affair_n for_o they_o be_v command_v to_o make_v gesture_n and_o to_o leap_v have_v their_o armour_n upon_o they_o that_o afterward_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o nimble_a to_o fight_v for_o the_o public_a weal_n when_o need_n shall_v require_v this_o kind_n of_o dance_v be_v call_v saltatio_fw-la pyrrhica_fw-la and_o because_o it_o be_v exercise_v in_o armour_n it_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o dance_n be_v mention_n in_o the_o civil_a law_n namely_o in_o the_o digest_v de_fw-fr poenis_fw-la in_o the_o law_n ad_fw-la damnum_fw-la and_o sometime_o young_a man_n when_o they_o have_v offend_v be_v not_o straitwaie_o put_v to_o death_n but_o be_v condemn_v either_o to_o hunt_v upon_o a_o stage_n or_o else_o to_o danse_v in_o armour_n and_o they_o be_v call_v pyrrhicarij_fw-la also_o there_o be_v a_o other_o kind_n of_o dance_v which_o be_v institute_v only_o for_o pleasure_n and_o wantonness_n sake_n dance_v lascivious_a dance_v and_o that_o be_v call_v of_o the_o grecian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o of_o those_o danse_v which_o by_o gesture_n of_o the_o body_n express_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o mind_n write_v lucianus_n in_o his_o book_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d athenaeus_n lucianus_n athenaeus_n and_o so_o do_v athenaeus_n in_o this_o kind_n man_n so_o prevail_v at_o the_o length_n that_o when_o at_o rome_n demetrius_n cynicus_n deride_v the_o danse_n call_v m_n nnica_fw-la saltatio_fw-la call_v it_o a_o thing_n vain_a and_o nothing_o worth_a a_o noble_a danser_n which_o then_o be_v have_v in_o honour_n at_o rome_n desire_v he_o that_o he_o will_v only_o once_o behold_v he_o while_o he_o danse_v and_o afterward_o to_o judge_v and_o speak_v his_o fancy_n whatsoever_o he_o will_v he_o come_v unto_o the_o stage_n the_o danser_n call_v saltator_n mimicus_n begin_v by_o gesture_n to_o resemble_v the_o common_a fable_n of_o mars_n take_v in_o adultery_n with_o venus_n wherein_o he_o so_o express_v the_o sun_n show_v the_o fact_n and_o vulcan_n knit_v his_o net_n and_o venus_n overcome_v with_o shame_n and_o mars_n humble_o desire_v pardon_n cynicus_n the_o say_n of_o demetrius_n cynicus_n that_o demetrius_n be_v astonish_v cry_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v i_o here_o o_o man_n the_o thing_n that_o thou_o do_v i_o do_v not_o only_o see_v they_o for_o by_o these_o thy_o hand_n thou_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o speak_v about_o the_o same_o time_n by_o chance_n come_v to_o rome_n the_o king_n of_o pontus_n and_o when_o he_o have_v see_v this_o danser_n make_v his_o gesture_n upon_o a_o stage_n be_v afterward_o will_v by_o nero_n to_o ask_v what_o he_o most_o desire_a to_o have_v give_v he_o he_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o same_o mimus_fw-la nero_n marvel_v see_v he_o may_v have_v ask_v other_o thing_n of_o much_o great_a price_n and_o ask_v he_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o his_o request_n he_o answer_v because_o i_o have_v sundry_a nation_n subject_a unto_o i_o which_o without_o a_o interpreter_n i_o can_v understand_v and_o oftentimes_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o interpreter_n do_v not_o faithful_o enough_o tell_v they_o what_o i_o say_v nor_o again_o what_o they_o say_v unto_o i_o but_o this_o fellow_n with_o his_o gesture_n will_v express_v all_o thing_n very_o faithful_o 53_o plato_n in_o his_o three_o book_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la make_v two_o kind_n of_o dansing_n the_o one_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v warlike_z which_o before_o we_o have_v call_v pyrrhicum_n the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v peaceable_a which_o he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o shameful_a kind_n of_o dance_v because_o it_o be_v open_o condemn_v by_o the_o law_n the_o pyrrhicall_a dance_n and_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o gesture_n may_v serve_v to_o some_o use_n in_o the_o public_a weal_n but_o they_o perteine_v not_o to_o our_o purpose_n wherefore_o we_o must_v here_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d how_o far_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v exercise_v for_o mirth_n sake_n evil_a dance_v by_o itself_o and_o in_o his_o now_o nature_n be_v not_o evil_a i_o think_v assure_o that_o this_o kind_n of_o dance_v be_v not_o of_o his_o own_o nature_n vicious_a or_o forbid_a because_o nimbleness_n and_o agility_n of_o body_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o if_o there_o be_v add_v any_o art_n namely_o that_o the_o body_n be_v move_v in_o order_n apt_o in_o number_n with_o comeliness_n and_o decency_n i_o do_v not_o see_v why_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v reproove_v so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v in_o time_n moderate_o and_o without_o offence_n for_o even_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o sing_v &_o we_o may_v use_v sing_v to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n and_o to_o celebrate_v his_o praise_n so_o likewise_o by_o a_o moderate_a dance_n we_o may_v testify_v the_o joy_n and_o mirth_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o david_n danse_v open_o before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n 7_o 2._o sam._n 16_o 6_o 1._o sam._n 18._o 7_o and_o the_o maiden_n with_o danse_v and_o song_n celebrate_v his_o victory_n against_o goliath_n marry_o also_o the_o sister_n of_o moses_n 20._o exo._n 15_o 20._o when_o pharaoh_n be_v overthrow_v and_o slay_v lead_v danse_v with_o other_o woman_n and_o song_n a_o song_n of_o victory_n wherefore_o see_v godly_a man_n and_o chaste_a woman_n have_v use_v danse_v we_o can_v say_v that_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v vicious_a but_o as_o it_o be_v use_v in_o these_o day_n evil_a dansing_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n together_o be_v evil_a that_o man_n shall_v danse_v mix_v together_o among_o woman_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v suffer_v because_o these_o thing_n be_v nourishment_n and_o provocation_n unto_o lust_n and_o wantonness_n marry_o the_o sister_n of_o moses_n danse_v not_o with_o young_a man_n but_o apart_o by_o herself_o among_o woman_n neither_o do_v david_n danse_v with_o woman_n and_o the_o maiden_n which_o celebrate_v his_o victory_n danse_v among_o themselves_o and_o not_o with_o man_n and_o now_o they_o which_o love_n god_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o their_o strength_n ought_v not_o only_o to_o observe_v his_o commandment_n but_o also_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o occasion_n whereby_o the_o observe_n of_o they_o may_v be_v let_v time_n reason_n against_o the_o danse_v of_o our_o time_n but_o our_o danse_v be_v most_o evident_a occasion_n of_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n they_o be_v snare_n and_o offence_n not_o only_o unto_o the_o danser_n but_o also_o to_o the_o beholder_n for_o they_o stir_v up_o and_o inflame_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n which_o otherwise_o be_v evil_a enough_o even_o from_o their_o beginning_n and_o that_o which_o ought_v with_o great_a study_n and_o endeavour_n be_v keep_v under_o be_v stir_v
wicked_a regard_n not_o these_o thing_n and_o also_o without_o this_o doctrine_n live_v wicked_o but_o the_o godly_a for_o that_o they_o have_v confidence_n that_o they_o be_v predestinate_v labour_n by_o holy_a work_n to_o make_v their_o call_n sure_o evil_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n be_v open_v a_o window_n unto_o good_a work_n not_o unto_o wickedness_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o adversary_n open_v a_o wide_a gate_n unto_o many_o evil_n and_o unto_o they_o by_o this_o doctrine_n be_v open_v a_o window_n unto_o modesty_n unto_o patience_n in_o affliction_n unto_o gratitude_n and_o unto_o a_o singular_a love_n towards_o god_n but_o take_v away_o this_o doctrine_n &_o there_o be_v make_v open_a not_o a_o window_n but_o a_o exceed_a wide_a gate_n to_o pride_n to_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n to_o uncertentie_n and_o doubt_v of_o salvation_n in_o adversity_n and_o the_o weaken_n of_o our_o love_n towards_o god_n 31_o but_o these_o man_n say_v further_o that_o this_o make_v very_o much_o against_o we_o for_o that_o nothing_o can_v light_v under_o predestination_n or_o reprobation_n but_o that_o which_o god_n will_v but_o that_o god_n shall_v will_v sin_n be_v to_o be_v count_v for_o a_o most_o absurd_a and_o a_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n they_o say_v moreover_o that_o god_n can_v justly_o punish_v if_o we_o commit_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o himself_o both_o will_v and_o work_v but_o this_o must_v we_o of_o necessity_n say_v if_o we_o affirm_v that_o not_o only_o our_o end_n but_o also_o our_o mean_n to_o the_o end_n depend_v of_o the_o purpose_n of_o god._n to_o satisfy_v this_o doubt_n first_o let_v they_o remember_v that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n after_o a_o sort_n will_v or_o as_o some_o other_o say_v permit_v sin_n but_o forsomuch_o as_o that_o be_v do_v without_o any_o coaction_n of_o our_o mind_n therefore_o no_o man_n when_o he_o sin_v can_v be_v excuse_v for_o he_o willing_o and_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n commit_v those_o sin_n for_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v condemn_v and_o have_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o they_o in_o himself_o and_o therefore_o have_v no_o need_n to_o seek_v it_o in_o god_n further_n this_o be_v no_o good_a comparison_n which_o these_o man_n make_v between_o good_a work_n and_o sin_n for_o god_n so_o work_v in_o we_o good_a work_n that_o he_o minister_v unto_o we_o his_o grace_n and_o spirit_n whereby_o these_o work_n be_v wrought_v for_o those_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o good_a work_n which_o ground_n we_o have_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o sin_n he_o so_o govern_v and_o after_o a_o sort_n will_v that_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o ground_n of_o they_o that_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o our_o corrupt_a and_o naughty_a nature_n be_v not_o in_o god_n but_o in_o us._n wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v pour_v into_o we_o by_o any_o outward_a mover_n and_o god_n be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n to_o will_n sin_n sin_n how_o god_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n say_v to_o will_n sin_n either_o for_o that_o when_o he_o can_v he_o prohibit_v they_o not_o or_o for_o that_o by_o his_o wisdom_n he_o direct_v they_o to_o certain_a end_n or_o for_o that_o he_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o burst_v forth_o but_o when_o and_o how_o and_o to_o what_o use_v he_o himself_o will_n or_o final_o for_o that_o by_o they_o he_o will_v punish_v other_o sin_n but_o these_o add_v that_o god_n by_o no_o mean_n will_v sin_n for_o so_o it_o be_v write_v in_o ezechiel_n as_o true_o as_o i_o live_v answer_n ezec._n 33_o 11._o look_v in_o 1._o sam._n 2_o 22_o the_o first_o answer_n say_v the_o lord_n i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o be_v convert_v &_o live_v but_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o prophet_n in_o that_o place_n intreat_v not_o of_o the_o mighty_a &_o hide_a will_n of_o god_n &_o of_o his_o effectual_a will_n for_o god_n by_o that_o will_n work_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o will_v both_o in_o heaven_n &_o in_o earth_n but_o he_o intreat_v of_o that_o will_n 3._o psal_n 115_o 3._o which_o they_o call_v the_o will_n of_o the_o sign_n for_o no_o man_n can_v by_o those_o sign_n and_o token_n which_o be_v express_v in_o the_o law_n gather_v that_o god_n will_v his_o death_n or_o condemnation_n for_o the_o lord_n command_v his_o law_n to_o be_v publish_v unto_o all_o man_n he_o have_v unto_o all_o man_n set_v forth_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v profitable_a &_o healthful_a last_o he_o upon_o all_o man_n indifferent_o pour_v great_a benefit_n wherefore_o by_o this_o will_n which_o we_o call_v the_o will_n of_o the_o sign_n he_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n yea_o rather_o he_o provoke_v they_o to_o repentance_n but_o as_o touch_v the_o other_o will_n which_o they_o call_v the_o will_n of_o his_o good_a pleasure_n if_o by_o it_o he_o will_v have_v no_o man_n perish_v then_o doubtless_o no_o man_n can_v perish_v and_o there_o be_v no_o will_n so_o perverse_a as_o augustine_n say_v which_o god_n if_o he_o will_v can_v make_v good_a then_o according_a to_o this_o will_n he_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o he_o will_v this_o be_v a_o ready_a and_o plain_a interpretation_n which_o if_o our_o adversary_n admit_v not_o but_o will_v needs_o contend_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o mighty_a will_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o will_n of_o good_a pleasure_n then_o will_v we_o answer_v answer_n the_o second_o answer_n that_o that_o sentence_n pertain_v not_o universallie_o unto_o all_o sinner_n but_o only_o to_o those_o which_o repent_v and_o they_o be_v the_o elect_a and_o predestinate_v unto_o who_o god_n as_o according_a to_o his_o purpose_n he_o give_v faith_n and_o calling_n so_o also_o give_v he_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o whether_o sense_n soever_o they_o follow_v they_o shall_v never_o out_o of_o those_o word_n conclude_v that_o god_n utterlie_o and_o by_o no_o mean_n will_v the_o death_n of_o sinner_n or_o sin_n 32_o but_o they_o object_n certain_a word_n out_o of_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n where_o it_o be_v write_v 13._o verse_n 13._o god_n reioise_v not_o in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n but_o if_o say_v they_o he_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o mean_n will_v sin_n or_o the_o punishment_n thereof_o he_o can_v be_v say_v not_o to_o rejoice_v for_o he_o reioise_v in_o that_o which_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v do_v first_o i_o answer_v that_o that_o book_n be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n and_o therefore_o the_o authority_n thereof_o may_v be_v refuse_v but_o admit_v that_o that_o book_n be_v canonical_a yet_o do_v those_o word_n make_v nothing_o against_o we_o for_o he_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o book_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o remove_v from_o god_n that_o naughtiness_n of_o nature_n whereby_o wicked_a man_n take_v pleasure_n in_o evil_a thing_n will_n god_n punish_v not_o wickedness_n against_o his_o will_n and_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o his_o meaning_n that_o god_n punish_v wicked_a fact_n against_o his_o will_n for_o otherwise_o whosoever_o be_v that_o author_n under_o the_o name_n of_o solomon_n he_o shall_v be_v against_o the_o true_a solomon_n for_o he_o in_o his_o proverb_n under_o the_o person_n of_o wisdom_n thus_o write_v of_o the_o ungodlie_a and_o unbeléever_n 26._o prou._n 1_o 26._o i_o also_o laugh_v in_o your_o destruction_n in_o which_o word_n be_v declare_v that_o god_n with_o this_o laugh_n that_o be_v with_o a_o chéerfull_a mind_n administer_v justice_n 11._o verse_n 11._o as_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o say_v of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v he_o have_v deceive_v i_o in_o which_o place_n the_o latin_a translation_n have_v i_o implanavit_fw-la unless_o we_o will_v have_v that_o place_n to_o be_v manifest_o repugnant_a with_o many_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v deceive_v the_o people_n by_o false_a prophet_n 10._o ezec._n 14._o 9_o 1._o kin._n 22_o 22._o esaie_n 6_o 10._o and_o to_o have_v command_v that_o achab_n the_o king_n shall_v be_v deceive_v and_o to_o have_v make_v blind_a the_o hart_n of_o the_o people_n lest_o they_o shall_v see_v we_o must_v needs_o after_o this_o manner_n expound_v those_o word_n man_n how_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o god_n deceive_v not_o man_n that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o lay_v the_o fault_n in_o god_n as_o though_o he_o will_v excuse_v himself_o achab_n if_o he_o be_v deceive_v justly_o deserve_v to_o be_v deceive_v for_o that_o he_o
be_v speak_v with_o a_o exception_n that_o exception_n shall_v belong_v to_o all_o man_n for_o christ_n say_v to_o pilate_n 11._o john_n 19_o 11._o thou_o shall_v not_o have_v power_n against_o i_o unless_o it_o be_v give_v thou_o from_o above_o shall_v we_o therefore_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o say_v that_o unto_o all_o man_n be_v give_v power_n against_o christ_n and_o when_o as_o it_o be_v write_v 15._o john_n 5_o 15._o that_o no_o man_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n unless_o he_o be_v bear_v again_o by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v we_o therefore_o infer_v that_o all_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o when_o the_o lord_n say_v 53._o john_n 6._o 53._o you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n shall_v we_o take_v it_o that_o all_o man_n eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o if_o this_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v why_o will_v these_o man_n when_o we_o say_v no_o man_n come_v unto_o i_o unless_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o thereof_o infer_v that_o all_o man_n be_v draw_v unto_o the_o father_n very_o if_o a_o man_n consider_v the_o course_n of_o the_o text_n he_o shall_v see_v that_o this_o sense_n can_v stand_v after_o that_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o drink_n of_o his_o blood_n the_o jew_n be_v by_o reason_n thereof_o offend_v and_o the_o disciple_n go_v their_o way_n upon_o occasion_n whereof_o christ_n say_v no_o man_n come_v unto_o i_o unless_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o which_o he_o ought_v in_o no_o case_n to_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v mean_v to_o reproove_v only_o they_o of_o infidelity_n he_o shall_v not_o doubtless_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o father_n as_o though_o he_o draw_v they_o not_o if_o he_o give_v that_o gift_n to_o all_o man_n and_o augustine_n when_o he_o interprete_v this_o place_n say_v why_o he_o draw_v this_o man_n &_o draw_v not_o that_o other_o man_n do_v not_o thou_o judge_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o err_v in_o which_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o all_o man_n be_v not_o draw_v of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o selfsame_o chapter_n it_o be_v write_v 37._o verse_n 37._o all_o that_o my_o father_n give_v i_o shall_v come_v unto_o i_o wherefore_o if_o all_o man_n be_v draw_v they_o shall_v all_o come_v unto_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v write_v 45._o verse_n 45._o every_o one_o which_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o father_n and_o have_v learned_a come_v unto_o i_o see_v then_o many_o come_v not_o unto_o christ_n thereby_o be_v declare_v that_o many_o neither_o have_v hear_v nor_o learn_v 11._o verse_n 11._o and_o in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n when_o christ_n have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o shepherd_n and_o have_v his_o sheep_n 28._o verse_n 28._o among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v these_o who_o my_o father_n give_v i_o no_o man_n can_v take_v out_o of_o my_o hand_n but_o we_o see_v that_o many_o fall_n from_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o think_v that_o those_o be_v not_o give_v of_o the_o father_n unto_o christ_n cavil_n a_o cavil_n 39_o but_o here_o also_o the_o adversary_n cavil_n that_o although_o no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o away_o yet_o nevertheless_o man_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n may_v go_v away_o similitude_n a_o similitude_n as_o if_o a_o man_n have_v servant_n be_v himself_o a_o lord_n of_o great_a might_n he_o may_v doubtless_o say_v no_o man_n can_v take_v away_o these_o servant_n from_o i_o and_o yet_o they_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n may_v go_v from_o he_o but_o how_o vain_a this_o their_o cavillation_n be_v the_o word_n which_o follow_v declare_v 29._o verse_n 29._o for_o christ_n add_v the_o father_n which_o give_v they_o unto_o i_o be_v great_a than_o all_o by_o which_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o therefore_o those_o who_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n can_v not_o be_v take_v away_o from_o he_o for_o that_o he_o be_v most_o mighty_a wherefore_o if_o they_o can_v by_v they_o be_v take_v away_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n neither_o also_o be_v they_o able_a to_o withdraw_v themselves_o not_o that_o they_o be_v compel_v by_o force_n abide_v it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o the_o predestinate_a abide_v but_o by_o the_o way_n of_o persuasion_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o they_o abide_v the_o very_a which_o thing_n the_o lord_n also_o speak_v touch_v the_o temptation_n of_o the_o latter_a time_n namely_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a the_o elect_a shall_v be_v deceive_v 24_o matt._n 24_o 24_o in_o the_o selfsame_o 6._o chapter_n of_o john_n christ_n say_v 44_o ver_fw-la 37_o &_o 44_o that_o no_o man_n come_v unto_o he_o but_o he_o unto_o who_o it_o be_v give_v of_o the_o father_n which_o place_n have_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o sense_n with_o that_o other_o sentence_n wherein_o he_o say_v no_o man_n come_v unto_o i_o unless_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o and_o john_n baptist_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o john_n 27._o verse_n 27._o when_o he_o hear_v of_o his_o disciple_n that_o christ_n baptize_v many_o answer_v that_o no_o man_n can_v receive_v any_o thing_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o selfsame_o chapter_n 8._o verse_n 8._o the_o spirit_n breathe_v where_o it_o will_n which_o although_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o wind_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v apply_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o regenerate_v for_o to_o declare_v the_o force_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o similitude_n be_v take_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o wind_n but_o this_o be_v more_o manifest_o set_v forth_o in_o matthew_n when_o it_o be_v say_v 27._o matt._n 11_o 27._o no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o wherein_o we_o be_v teach_v man_n the_o reveal_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o man_n that_o the_o reveal_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o give_v unto_o all_o man_n which_o thing_n christ_n in_o the_o same_o evangelist_n declare_v when_o turn_v he_o unto_o the_o father_n he_o say_v 25._o ibid._n ver_fw-la 25._o i_o give_v thou_o thanks_o o_o king_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o earth_n for_o that_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a man_n and_o have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o babe_n there_o also_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o reveal_n of_o true_a doctrine_n be_v not_o common_a unto_o all_o man_n but_o if_o thou_o will_v say_v cavillation_n a_o cavillation_n that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o reveal_v unto_o the_o wise_a man_n for_o that_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o the_o word_n follow_v do_v not_o render_v this_o cause_n but_o rather_o declare_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n have_v so_o decree_v for_o it_o follow_v for_o so_o it_o have_v please_v thou_o and_o again_o when_o the_o apostle_n inquire_v why_o he_o speak_v in_o parable_n to_o the_o people_n he_o answer_v unto_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v mystery_n 11._o matt._n 13_o 11._o but_o unto_o they_o it_o be_v not_o give_v and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o so_o speak_v unto_o they_o that_o they_o see_v shall_v not_o see_v 9_o esai_n 6_o 9_o and_o hear_v shall_v not_o understand_v and_o he_o cite_v a_o pprophecy_n out_o of_o the_o 6._o of_o esaie_n wherein_o be_v command_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v make_v blind_a and_o that_o their_o hart_n shall_v be_v make_v gross_a lest_o peradventure_o they_o shall_v be_v convert_v &_o god_n shall_v heal_v they_o moreover_o the_o apostle_n cit_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la 15._o rom._n 9_o 15._o god_n thus_o speak_v 19_o exod._n 33_o 19_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o will_v show_v compassion_n on_o who_o i_o will_v show_v compassion_n also_o that_o which_o be_v write_v of_o pharaoh_n 17._o rom._n 9_o 17._o to_o this_o end_n have_v i_o raise_v thou_o up_o 16._o exod._n 9_o 16._o that_o i_o may_v show_v my_o power_n in_o thou_o and_o he_o say_v also_o 22._o rom._n 9_o 22._o that_o some_o vessel_n be_v make_v to_o honour_n and_o some_o to_o dishonour_v which_o word_n most_o evident_o declare_v that_o grace_n be_v not_o set_v forth_o common_a unto_o all_o man_n peter_n also_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v unto_o simon_n magus_n 23._o acts._n 8_o 23._o repent_v if_o peradventure_o god_n forgeve_v unto_o thou_o this_o thought_n but_o they_o say_v that_o in_o this_o place_n peter_n doubt_v not_o but_o that_o grace_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o man_n but_o he_o be_v uncerteine_a whether_o
simon_n will_v receive_v it_o and_o earnest_o repent_v but_o this_o subtle_a shift_n nothing_o help_v they_o 26._o repentance_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 2._o timot._fw-la 2._o 25_o and_o 26._o for_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o unto_o timothy_n even_o repentance_n also_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n for_o he_o admonish_v a_o bishop_n to_o hold_v fast_o sound_a doctrine_n &_o to_o reproove_v they_o that_o resist_v if_o peradventure_o god_n give_v unto_o they_o to_o repent_v whereby_o be_v conclude_v that_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o man_n to_o return_v into_o the_o way_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v they_o of_o god_n moreover_o 31._o mat._n 12_o 31._o some_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v not_o pardon_v neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v so_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o unto_o these_o man_n grace_n be_v no_o more_o offer_v nor_o common_a 14._o acts._n 16_o 14._o and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v open_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o sell_v silk_n to_o give_v heed_n unto_o those_o thing_n which_o paul_n speak_v which_o be_v speak_v as_o a_o certain_a thing_n peculiarlie_o give_v to_o that_o woman_n and_o this_o place_n make_v that_o plain_a which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n 20._o apoc._n 3_o 20._o behold_v i_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n &_o knock_n if_o any_o man_n open_a unto_o i_o etc._n etc._n for_o we_o be_v say_v to_o open_v in_o as_o much_o as_o god_n work_v that_o in_o we_o for_o he_o make_v we_o to_o open_v &_o it_o be_v he_o which_o give_v unto_o we_o to_o work_v our_o salvation_n 12._o phili._n 2_o 12._o as_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o philippian_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v many_o time_n write_v that_o many_o be_v call_v 14._o matt._n 20_o 16_o and_o 22_o 14._o but_o few_o be_v choose_v paul_n also_o declare_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o distribute_v his_o gift_n when_o he_o say_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n 11_o 1._o cor._n 12_o 11_o that_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o spirit_n distribute_v unto_o all_o man_n as_o please_v he_o which_o sentence_n although_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o grace_n &_o free_a gift_n as_o they_o term_v they_o yet_o may_v it_o no_o less_o be_v transfer_v unto_o the_o grace_n whereby_o we_o be_v renew_v unto_o salvation_n see_v god_n be_v alike_o free_a in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o 40_o last_o while_o these_o man_n thus_o make_v grace_n common_a unto_o all_o man_n nature_n grace_n be_v not_o to_o be_v put_v as_o nature_n they_o convert_v it_o into_o nature_n which_o in_o no_o wise_a agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o how_o much_o they_o be_v deceive_v hereby_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v for_o that_o they_o seek_v of_o these_o thing_n to_o infer_v that_o it_o lie_v in_o every_o man_n power_n to_o receive_v grace_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o they_o which_o in_o no_o case_n agree_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 5._o 2._o cor._n 3_o 5._o for_o paul_n say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o think_v any_o thing_n of_o ourselves_o and_o that_o all_o our_o sufficiency_n be_v of_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o philippian_n he_o write_v 13._o phil._n 2_o 13._o that_o god_n work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v according_a to_o his_o good_a will_n and_o unto_o the_o corinthian_n when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o have_v labour_v much_o 10_o 1._o co._n 15_o 10_o he_o add_v not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o i_o to_o the_o roman_n he_o write_v 16._o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o receive_v grace_n offer_v rom._n 9_o 16._o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o that_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o have_v mercy_n which_o can_v not_o be_v true_a if_o it_o lie_v in_o our_o will_n to_o receive_v grace_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v touch_v which_o place_n augustine_n to_o simplicianus_n in_o his_o first_o book_n and_o second_o question_n say_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n be_v not_o as_o though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o will_n unless_o god_n aid_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n for_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o may_v contrariwise_o have_v say_v it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n that_o have_v mercy_n but_o of_o man_n that_o will_v but_o the_o sense_n be_v as_o it_o be_v write_v unto_o the_o philippian_n 13._o phil._n 2_o 13._o that_o it_o be_v god_n which_o work_v in_o we_o to_o will_n and_o to_o perform_v and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o in_o vain_a will_n unless_o god_n have_v mercy_n &_o help_v but_o who_o will_v say_v that_o god_n in_o vain_a have_v mercy_n if_o we_o will_v not_o in_o ezechiel_n the_o prophet_n it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n himself_o will_v change_v our_o heart_n 49_o ezec._n 11_o 49_o &_o in_o steed_n of_o stony_a heart_n give_v we_o fleshy_a heart_n and_o david_n in_o the_o psalm_n sing_v incline_v my_o hart_n 36_o psal_n 116_o 36_o o_o god_n unto_o thy_o testimony_n to_o declare_v that_o it_o pertain_v unto_o god_n to_o bow_v our_o will_n which_o he_o in_o another_o place_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v 10._o psal_n 51_o 10._o a_o clean_a hart_n create_v in_o i_o o_o god_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n it_o be_v write_v that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v a_o chaste_a hart_n but_o he_o unto_o who_o god_n shall_v give_v it_o and_o christ_n most_o manifest_o teach_v 18._o mat._n 7_o 18._o that_o a_o evil_a tree_n can_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n wherefore_o so_o long_o as_o man_n be_v not_o regenerate_v they_o can_v bring_v forth_o so_o good_a fruit_n that_o they_o shall_v assent_v unto_o grace_n when_o it_o knock_v so_o that_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o be_v change_v from_o the_o same_o and_o that_o of_o evil_a plant_n they_o be_v make_v good_a as_o in_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o flesh_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n no_o man_n which_o be_v procreate_v help_v any_o thing_n thereto_o even_o so_o be_v it_o in_o regeneration_n for_o that_o there_o also_o we_o be_v bear_v again_o through_o christ_n and_o in_o christ_n moreover_o if_o we_o shall_v give_v place_n unto_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o man_n all_o boast_a shall_v not_o be_v exclude_v for_o every_o man_n may_v boast_v of_o that_o his_o own_o act_n whereby_o he_o receive_v grace_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v furthermore_o see_v that_o this_o apprehension_n according_a to_o our_o mind_n be_v do_v by_o faith_n but_o as_o they_o think_v by_o charity_n what_o will_v they_o do_v will_v they_o deny_v that_o faith_n and_o charity_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n augustine_n also_o reason_v that_o as_o in_o christ_n the_o divine_a nature_n take_v humane_a nature_n free_o not_o wait_v for_o the_o consent_n thereof_o so_o they_o which_o be_v justify_v be_v not_o justify_v by_o their_o own_o will_n or_o assent_v the_o same_o father_n also_o note_v that_o eternal_a life_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n sometime_o call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o reward_n for_o that_o good_a work_n go_v before_o it_o reward_n grace_n and_o righteousness_n be_v never_o call_v a_o reward_n but_o grace_n say_v he_o and_o righteousness_n be_v never_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o reward_n for_o that_o before_o it_o go_v no_o good_a work_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o roman_n paul_n write_v i_o know_v that_o in_o i_o 18._o rom._n 7_o 18._o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a where_o by_o flesh_n he_o understand_v whatsoever_o be_v in_o a_o man_n not_o yet_o regenerate_v scripture_n how_o flesh_n be_v understand_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o dare_v they_o notwithstanding_o attribute_v unto_o man_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v not_o yet_o regenerate_v so_o much_o good_a that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o apply_v salvation_n unto_o himself_o and_o unto_o the_o corinthian_n what_o have_v thou_o say_v he_o which_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v 7._o 1._o cor._n 4._o 7._o and_o if_o thou_o have_v receive_v why_o boast_v thou_o as_o though_o thou_o have_v not_o receive_v neither_o will_v we_o suffer_v these_o man_n to_o run_v unto_o creation_n for_o here_o we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o soul_n or_o of_o the_o power_n thereof_o that_o be_v of_o will_n or_o understanding_n which_o we_o have_v of_o god_n by_o creation_n but_o of_o that_o action_n or_o work_n which_o these_o man_n seek_v to_o pick_v out_o of_o free_a will_n to_o the_o receive_n of_o grace_n and_o forsomuch_o as_o they_o say_v that_o they_o have_v this_o of_o themselves_o they_o manifest_o speak_v against_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o corinthian_n may_v have_v
be_v write_v that_o sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n by_o one_o man_n because_o that_o same_o one_o that_o be_v the_o first_o man_n be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o devil_n death_n in_o what_o respect_n god_n make_v death_n therefore_o say_v augustine_n god_n make_v not_o death_n absolute_o and_o by_o itself_o but_o for_o a_o just_a recompense_n impose_v the_o same_o upon_o sinner_n for_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o produce_v a_o thing_n absolute_o and_o by_o itself_o and_o another_o thing_n justly_o to_o lay_v it_o upon_o we_o for_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v of_o god_n by_o themselves_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n good_a 31._o gen._n 1_o 31._o for_o god_n see_v all_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o they_o be_v very_o good_a those_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v lay_v upon_o we_o for_o a_o reward_n of_o sin_n although_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v evil_a that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o our_o nature_n yet_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o justice_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v count_v for_o good_a thing_n for_o the_o plain_a declaration_n whereof_o augustine_n use_v a_o very_a apt_a similitiude_n augustine_n augustine_n when_o a_o judge_n condemn_v a_o man_n to_o execution_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n he_o be_v not_o proper_o say_v to_o have_v do_v the_o execution_n see_v the_o guilty_a man_n procure_v the_o same_o to_o himself_o wherefore_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a will_n of_o god_n absolute_a and_o another_o as_o augustine_n call_v it_o recompense_v recompense_n one_o will_v of_o god_n absolute_a and_o another_o recompense_n to_o whether_o of_o those_o belong_v the_o present_a place_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n will_v destroy_v the_o son_n of_o helie_n whether_o shall_v we_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o absolute_a will_n or_o of_o the_o recompense_n will_n doubtless_o of_o the_o recompense_n because_o of_o the_o absolute_a will_v it_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v therefore_o say_v augustine_n it_o be_v most_o just_a that_o when_o our_o soul_n shall_v of_o his_o own_o will_v depart_v from_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o his_o body_n whether_o it_o will_v or_o no._n in_o like_a manner_n there_o will_v be_v a_o difference_n put_v between_o the_o condition_n of_o sinner_n consider_v the_o condition_n of_o sinner_n must_v be_v consider_v for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o which_o sorrow_n that_o they_o have_v sin_v and_o who_o it_o repent_v of_o their_o sin_n commit_v these_o man_n as_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o election_n even_o so_o do_v they_o exercise_v the_o faith_n wherewith_o they_o be_v adorn_v 61_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o sinner_n speak_v god_n when_o he_o say_v in_o ezechiel_n 11._o ezech._n 18._o and_o 33_o 11._o i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o this_o will_n of_o god_n be_v so_o firm_a and_o steadfast_a as_o he_o confirm_v the_o same_o with_o a_o oath_n as_o true_o as_o i_o live_v say_v he_o i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o other_o do_v so_o stick_v in_o their_o wickedness_n as_o they_o be_v never_o lead_v with_o any_o repentance_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o reprobate_n these_o man_n assure_o god_n will_v have_v to_o die_v and_o for_o a_o truth_n after_o that_o they_o have_v fulfil_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o gréevous_a sin_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o they_o shall_v die_v that_o one_o day_n at_o the_o length_n they_o may_v make_v a_o end_n of_o their_o sin_v therefore_o whereas_o the_o prophet_n say_v under_o the_o person_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n it_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v universallie_o as_o touch_v all_o but_o of_o some_o certain_a we_o may_v also_o add_v with_o many_o divine_n that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a will_n of_o god_n signify_v one_o will_v of_o god_n effectual_a and_o another_o signify_v which_o they_o call_v effectual_a and_o also_o another_o of_o the_o sign_n for_o there_o be_v give_v to_o all_o man_n one_o with_o another_o certain_a sign_n of_o salvation_n such_o as_o be_v outward_a vocation_n which_o do_v chéefelie_o consist_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o preach_v and_o of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n another_o will_v there_o be_v of_o god_n secret_a which_o be_v call_v effectual_a and_o belong_v not_o unto_o all_o man_n together_o for_o if_o it_o comprehend_v all_o man_n no_o doubt_n but_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v for_o such_o be_v the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o god_n as_o of_o he_o the_o scripture_n pronounce_v 6._o psal_n 135_o 6._o he_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n whatsoever_o he_o will_v so_o that_o the_o prophet_n ezechiel_n mean_v that_o our_o punishment_n must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n 11._o ezec._n 33_o 11._o but_o rather_o to_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o own_o self_n and_o when_o he_o add_v that_o god_n will_v that_o man_n shall_v convert_v and_o live_v that_o must_v not_o so_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o we_o may_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o repentance_n see_v we_o obtain_v that_o by_o faith_n which_o only_o procure_v to_o we_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n and_o no_o less_o be_v repentance_n than_o our_o faith_n to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o undoubted_o 29._o faith_n and_o repentance_n gift_n of_o god_n alike_o 2._o tim._n 2_o 25._o phil._n 1_o 29._o as_o touch_v repentance_n paul_n speak_v unto_o timothy_n if_o peradventure_o god_n shall_v give_v they_o repentance_n but_o of_o faith_n it_o be_v write_v to_o the_o philippian_n god_n have_v not_o only_o give_v it_o unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v believe_v but_o also_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n and_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n 8._o ephes_n 2_o 8._o by_o faith_n you_o be_v save_v and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n very_o we_o have_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n not_o of_o our_o own_o strength_n because_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o ourselves_o as_o of_o ourselves_o to_o further_o any_o thing_n unto_o our_o salvation_n 13._o 2._o cor_n 3_o 5._o phil._n 2_o 13._o for_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v wherefore_o not_o some_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o the_o whole_a depend_v of_o god_n but_o and_o if_o thou_o shall_v demand_v why_o god_n bestow_v these_o his_o gift_n rather_o on_o this_o man_n than_o on_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unsearchable_a this_o aught_o to_o satisfy_v we_o to_o confess_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v he_o do_v it_o right_o and_o isutlie_o 62_o but_o whereas_o esaie_n say_v 21._o esai_n 28_o 21._o that_o god_n do_v a_o strange_a work_n when_o he_o bring_v just_a punishment_n upon_o the_o wicked_a it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o make_v it_o agree_v with_o the_o sentence_n that_o we_o have_v set_v down_o see_v that_o god_n of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o without_o just_a cause_n infer_v no_o evil_a for_o he_o be_v provoke_v by_o our_o sin_n and_o he_o recompense_v our_o wickedness_n with_o a_o just_a damnation_n nevertheless_o in_o that_o place_n a_o strange_a work_n seem_v unto_o i_o to_o signify_v a_o work_n unaccustomed_a evil_n how_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a work_n unto_o god_n to_o punish_v evil_n not_o see_v nor_o hear_v of_o before_o as_o if_o god_n shall_v say_v i_o will_v bring_v upon_o you_o not_o a_o ordinary_a and_o daily_a punishment_n but_o a_o notable_a and_o wonder_a punishment_n he_o that_o shall_v after_o this_o manner_n understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n in_o my_o judgement_n he_o shall_v vary_v from_o the_o natural_a sense_n thereof_o and_o whereas_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n 13._o how_o god_n make_v not_o death_n wild._n 1_o 13._o that_o god_n make_v not_o death_n nor_o delight_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n it_o be_v as_o i_o think_v plain_o enough_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v already_o speak_v for_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o god_n make_v not_o death_n because_o we_o by_o our_o sin_n have_v draw_v it_o unto_o we_o but_o yet_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o affirm_v that_o the_o same_o be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n derive_v from_o god_n neither_o must_v make_v or_o ordain_v be_v urge_v vehementlie_o in_o that_o place_n otherwise_o it_o may_v be_v again_o object_v against_o they_o out_o of_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la 14._o verse_n 14._o that_o death_n and_o life_n good_a and_o evil_a poverty_n and_o riches_n be_v of_o god_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v add_v that_o god_n reioise_v not_o at_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n that_o be_v true_a
god_n the_o will_n be_v change_v of_o god_n be_v not_o idle_a the_o regenerate_v do_v work_v together_o with_o god_n neither_o do_v i_o speak_v these_o thing_n as_o though_o the_o will_n be_v change_v by_o god_n shall_v become_v idle_a and_o do_v nothing_o for_o be_v restore_v it_o must_v work_v together_o with_o grace_n according_a to_o that_o which_o barnard_n speak_v of_o free_a will_n that_o the_o same_o which_o be_v begin_v by_o the_o one_o be_v perform_v by_o both_o for_o than_o we_o be_v not_o only_o mere_a man_n or_o naked_a but_o be_v make_v also_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o have_v add_v unto_o we_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o paul_n say_v unto_o timothy_n 17._o 2._o tim._n 3_o 17._o that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v now_o apt_a and_o meet_a unto_o all_o good_a thing_n 13_o but_o man_n be_v wont_v to_o say_v and_o common_o to_o boast_v man_n whether_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v abroad_o to_o all_o man_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v forth_o to_o all_o man_n wherefore_o if_o the_o same_o be_v not_o embrace_v the_o fault_n be_v in_o ourselves_o for_o that_o every_o man_n may_v attain_v to_o it_o if_o he_o will_n this_o cloud_n we_o must_v rid_v away_o by_o some_o short_a discourse_n indeed_o we_o may_v grant_v that_o after_o this_o sort_n grace_n be_v set_v abroad_o unto_o all_o man_n because_o the_o general_a promise_n of_o god_n be_v offer_v and_o preched_a indifferent_o to_o all_o man_n neither_o do_v the_o preacher_n which_o publish_v those_o promise_n stick_v any_o thing_n about_o the_o secret_a will_n of_o god_n or_o else_o think_v this_o with_o themselves_o peradventure_o this_o man_n be_v not_o predestinate_a or_o i_o shall_v further_o nothing_o by_o my_o travel_n they_o imagine_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o they_o propound_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o all_o man_n general_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o grace_n and_o call_n of_o god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v common_a unto_o all_o man_n howbeit_o when_o as_o any_o man_n receive_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n offer_v similitude_n when_o a_o man_n receive_v grace_n he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o own_o will_n acts._n 16_o 15._o a_o similitude_n he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o his_o own_o power_n or_o will_n for_o of_o necessity_n his_o hart_n must_v be_v open_v which_o thing_n luke_n in_o the_o act_n testify_v of_o the_o woman_n that_o sell_v purple_a for_o all_o man_n be_v not_o effectual_o call_v and_o according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n but_o these_o man_n seem_v to_o feign_v to_o themselves_o a_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v some_o garment_n hang_v in_o the_o air_n which_o every_o man_n may_v put_v on_o that_o will_n but_o these_o be_v the_o devise_n of_o man_n wisdom_n the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v otherwise_o they_o be_v wont_v also_o to_o distinguish_v grace_n on_o this_o wise_a 13._o a_o grace_n work_v and_o a_o grace_n work_v together_o phil._n 2_o 13._o that_o there_o be_v grace_n work_v and_o a_o grace_n that_o work_v together_o from_o which_o distinction_n augustine_n differ_v not_o for_o the_o same_o seem_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o perform_v wherefore_o work_v grace_n be_v that_o which_o at_o the_o beginning_n heal_v the_o will_n and_o change_v it_o then_o afterward_o it_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o same_o be_v be_v change_v and_o heal_v it_o do_v right_o and_o first_o indeed_o it_o be_v call_v a_o work_a grace_n afterward_o a_o grace_n work_v together_o and_o this_o be_v all_o one_o grace_n and_o not_o two_o grace_n grace_n a_o grace_n work_v &_o work_v together_o be_v all_o one_o grace_n but_o the_o distinction_n be_v take_v from_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o same_o for_o first_o the_o will_n when_o it_o be_v heal_v it_o concur_v with_o grace_n passivelie_o for_o the_o same_o be_v say_v to_o be_v change_v and_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v regenerate_v but_o afterward_o it_o behave_v itself_o both_o activelie_a and_o passivelie_o for_o when_o it_o be_v urge_v forward_o by_o god_n it_o also_o will_v and_o choose_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o be_v true_a which_o be_v write_v to_o the_o hebrews_n take_v heed_n that_o you_o fall_v not_o away_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o be_v regenerate_v 15._o heb._n 14_o 15._o we_o ought_v not_o to_o sit_v idle_a but_o to_o work_v &_o live_v according_a to_o the_o grace_n which_o do_v accompany_v us._n but_o those_o do_v excéedinglie_o err_v which_o judge_v that_o the_o very_a will_n itself_o can_v will_v good_a thing_n thing_n the_o will_n of_o itself_o can_v will_v good_a thing_n and_o that_o by_o grace_n &_o the_o spirit_n be_v only_o wrought_v to_o will_v effectual_o and_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v will_v may_v be_v obtain_v this_o as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o scripture_n they_o demand_v further_o whether_o we_o deserve_v any_o thing_n by_o that_o first_o grace_n indeed_o our_o adversary_n affirm_v that_o we_o do_v howbeit_o it_o we_o deny_v the_o same_o and_o altogether_o reject_v the_o consideration_n of_o merit_n and_o for_o how_o just_a cause_n we_o do_v the_o same_o it_o shall_v be_v more_o fit_a to_o declare_v eleswhere_o we_o confess_v doubtless_o that_o god_n be_v wont_v of_o his_o liberality_n and_o mercy_n to_o grant_v benefit_n after_o benefit_n but_o we_o grant_v not_o for_o all_o this_o that_o each_o first_o gift_n of_o god_n can_v deserve_v other_o latter_a gift_n 35._o each_o first_o gift_n of_o god_n deserve_v not_o the_o latter_a gift_n matt._n 25_o 29._o ibidem_fw-la 35._o and_o so_o much_o those_o place_n be_v understand_v in_o the_o gospel_n to_o he_o that_o have_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o go_v to_o good_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a in_o few_o thing_n i_o will_v set_v thou_o over_o many_o thing_n 14_o beside_o this_o they_o divide_v grace_n into_o grace_n prevent_v and_o grace_n after_o follow_v which_o division_n augustine_n seem_v to_o allow_v 11._o grace_n prevent_v and_o after_o follow_v psal_n 59_o 11._o by_o the_o word_n of_o david_n in_o the_o 59_o psalm_n his_o mercy_n shall_v prevent_v i_o and_o his_o mercy_n shall_v follow_v i_o howbeit_o this_o distinction_n must_v be_v so_o admit_v as_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o grace_n and_o the_o diversity_n consist_v in_o the_o effect_n for_o there_o be_v many_o and_o sundry_a gift_n grace_n it_o be_v one_o very_a grace_n but_o it_o vari_v in_o the_o effect_n the_o order_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o grace_n with_o the_o which_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n do_v garnish_v we_o for_o first_o our_o will_n be_v heal_v and_o the_o same_o be_v heal_v it_o begin_v to_o will_n well_o afterward_o those_o thing_n that_o it_o will_v well_o it_o begin_v to_o execute_v final_o it_o continue_v in_o do_v well_o and_o last_o of_o all_o it_o be_v crown_v wherefore_o grace_n prevent_v our_o will_n in_o heal_v of_o it_o the_o very_a same_o follow_v in_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v right_a may_v please_v it_o prevent_v that_o we_o may_v will_n it_o follow_v in_o drive_v we_o to_o perform_v those_o thing_n that_o we_o will_v it_o prevent_v by_o move_v we_o to_o good_a work_n it_o follow_v by_o give_v of_o perseverance_n it_o prevent_v by_o give_v perseverance_n it_o follow_v after_o by_o crown_v of_o the_o same_o and_o even_o as_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n which_o nourish_v and_o prepare_v the_o earth_n to_o receive_v séed_o and_o that_o make_v the_o same_o to_o grow_v when_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v grow_v up_o cherish_v they_o that_o they_o may_v bear_v fruit_n even_o so_o it_o be_v all_o one_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o both_o come_v before_o the_o will_n and_o also_o which_o follow_v after_o also_o augustine_n say_v grace_n prevent_v that_o we_o may_v be_v heal_v it_o follow_v after_o that_o we_o may_v be_v quicken_v it_o prevent_v that_o we_o may_v be_v call_v it_o follow_v that_o we_o may_v be_v glorify_v wherefore_o they_o judge_v amiss_o which_o think_v that_o grace_n prevent_v be_v a_o certain_a common_a motion_n wherewith_o god_n knock_v at_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n invite_v they_o to_o live_v well_o as_o though_o it_o be_v in_o man_n hand_n either_o to_o come_v or_o refuse_v when_o grace_n invit_v no_o less_o do_v they_o err_v which_o jangle_n in_o the_o school_n that_o it_o be_v one_o grace_n which_o be_v free_o give_v 6._o it_o behoove_v that_o all_o grace_n be_v give_v free_o rom._n 11_o 6._o
merit_n but_o for_o his_o mercy_n wherefore_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o 103._o psalm_n which_o crow_v thou_o in_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n because_o it_o be_v he_o that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o also_o to_o perform_v 13._o phil._n 2_o 13._o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v before_o work_v your_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a afterward_o lest_o we_o shall_v attribute_v this_o thing_n unto_o ourselves_o 12._o verse_n 12._o he_o say_v that_o god_n work_v these_o thing_n in_o we_o and_o that_o not_o for_o our_o merit_n but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n the_o eight_o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o small_a ambiguity_n how_o eternal_a life_n be_v render_v unto_o good_a work_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o every_o man_n shall_v have_v according_a to_o his_o work_n 4._o 2._o cor._n 5_o 10._o psal_n 62_o 12._o rom._n 6_o 23._o rom._n 4_o 4._o and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n paul_n call_v grace_n eternal_a life_n but_o the_o property_n of_o grace_n be_v to_o be_v render_v free_o paul_n also_o say_v unto_o he_o which_o work_v not_o the_o reward_n be_v not_o impute_v according_a to_o det_fw-la but_o according_a to_o grace_n and_o he_o say_v moreover_o 5._o rom._n 11_o 6._o rom._n 11_o 5._o that_o grace_n if_o it_o be_v of_o work_n be_v not_o grace_n again_o that_o the_o remnant_n through_o the_o election_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v save_v again_o unto_o the_o ephesian_n 8._o ephes_n 2_o 8._o by_o grace_n you_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o again_o not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v glory_v 9_o ibidem_fw-la 9_o this_o doubt_n say_v augustine_n can_v otherwise_o be_v dissolve_v 13._o an_o upright_o and_o holy_a life_n be_v grace_n how_o eternal_a life_n be_v render_v unto_o work_n good_a work_n be_v give_v by_o grace_n therefore_o eternal_a life_n be_v give_v by_o grace_n jam_fw-la 2_o 13._o unless_o we_o grant_v that_o a_o upright_o and_o holy_a life_n be_v grace_n for_o so_o either_o say_v may_v take_v place_n for_o eternal_a life_n be_v render_v unto_o work_n but_o because_o work_n be_v free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n therefore_o also_o be_v eternal_a life_n call_v grace_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr correctione_n &_o gratia_fw-la the_o 13._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o james_n write_v that_o judgement_n shall_v be_v without_o mercy_n unto_o he_o which_o show_v not_o mercy_n by_o which_o word_n say_v he_o appear_v that_o they_o which_o live_v well_o shall_v in_o the_o last_o judgement_n be_v judge_v with_o mercy_n &_o they_o which_o have_v live_v wicked_o shall_v be_v judge_v without_o mercy_n and_o if_o that_o in_o judgement_n we_o have_v need_n of_o mercy_n then_o be_v it_o not_o now_o do_v for_o merit_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n he_o allege_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o machabeis_n who_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o second_o book_n and_o seven_o chapter_n thus_o speak_v unto_o her_o son_n 9_o verse_n 29._o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v call_v mercy_n prou._n 20_o 9_o that_o i_o may_v in_o that_o mercy_n receive_v thou_o with_o thy_o brethren_n in_o which_o place_n she_o call_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n mercy_n and_o undoubted_o when_o we_o shall_v come_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n who_o shall_v boast_v that_o he_o have_v a_o chaste_a hart_n or_o who_o shall_v boast_v that_o he_o have_v a_o clean_a hart_n 17._o that_o we_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o mercy_n in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n psal_n 32._o jam._n 1_o 17._o wherefore_o mercy_n be_v there_o needful_a also_o whereby_o he_o may_v be_v make_v bless_v unto_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o impute_v sin_n 17_o the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o 105._o epistle_n to_o sistus_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v the_o stipend_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n who_o will_v not_o judge_v that_o he_o shall_v most_o apt_o and_o consequent_o have_v add_v but_o the_o stipend_n of_o righteousness_n be_v eternal_a life_n and_o it_o be_v true_a because_o even_o as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o sin_n death_n be_v render_v for_o a_o stipend_n so_o also_o unto_o the_o merit_n of_o righteousness_n eternal_a life_n be_v render_v as_o a_o stipend_n but_o the_o bless_a apostle_n most_o vigilant_o war_a against_o pride_n when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o stipend_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n lest_o man_n righteousness_n shall_v advance_v itself_o say_v not_o contrariwise_o that_o the_o stipend_n of_o righteousness_n be_v eternal_a life_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v eternal_a life_n but_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o think_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v for_o humility_n and_o moderation_n sake_n for_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o in_o very_a deed_n for_o our_o work_n receive_v not_o eternal_a life_n for_o a_o just_a and_o deserve_a stipend_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o man_n righteousness_n be_v pride_n and_o which_o in_o name_n only_o be_v call_v righteousness_n but_o that_o ought_v to_o be_v true_a righteousness_n unto_o which_o eternal_a life_n be_v due_a which_o righteousness_n if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o thou_o then_o be_v it_o from_o above_o duty_n eternal_a life_n be_v the_o stipend_n of_o righteousness_n but_o unto_o man_n it_o be_v grace_n if_o righteousness_n be_v of_o our_o own_o self_n we_o shall_v have_v eternal_a life_n as_o a_o duty_n descend_v from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n wherefore_o o_o man_n if_o thou_o shall_v receive_v eternal_a life_n it_o be_v indeed_o the_o stipend_n of_o righteousness_n but_o unto_o thou_o it_o be_v grace_n unto_o who_o also_o even_o righteousness_n be_v grace_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v render_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o debt_n if_o the_o righteousness_n unto_o who_o it_o be_v due_a be_v of_o thyself_o by_o all_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v gather_v that_o with_o augustine_n eternal_a life_n be_v therefore_o call_v grace_n because_o the_o work_n which_o go_v before_o it_o be_v give_v free_o further_o he_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o last_o judgement_n when_o god_n shall_v reward_v these_o thing_n we_o shall_v have_v need_n of_o mercy_n and_o compassion_n and_o that_o also_o we_o have_v always_o need_n of_o mercy_n that_o our_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v impute_v unto_o us._n last_o that_o eternal_a life_n although_o that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o stipend_n of_o righteousness_n be_v take_v by_o itself_o yet_o unto_o we_o it_o be_v grace_n partly_o because_o it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o and_o partly_o also_o because_o it_o be_v unperfect_a hilarius_n in_o like_a manner_n write_v upon_o the_o 50._o hilarius_n hilarius_n psalm_n my_o hope_n be_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o world_n without_o end_n for_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n be_v not_o sufficient_a unto_o the_o merit_n of_o perfect_a blessedness_n unless_o in_o this_o will_n of_o righteousness_n the_o mercy_n of_o god_n impute_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o humane_a change_n and_o motion_n jerom._n jerom._n also_o jerom_n upon_o esaie_n the_o 46._o chapter_n if_o we_o shall_v consider_v our_o own_o merit_n we_o must_v needs_o despair_v sort_n both_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n grant_v that_o good_a work_n be_v give_v through_o grace_n but_o yet_o not_o after_o one_o sort_n our_o adversary_n and_o we_o contend_v not_o whether_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n good_a work_n be_v give_v to_o the_o regenerate_a although_o even_o in_o this_o also_o we_o do_v not_o utterlie_o agree_v with_o they_o for_o they_o think_v that_o it_o lie_v in_o our_o power_n to_o receive_v good_a work_n when_o they_o be_v offer_v but_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o our_o will_n to_o be_v change_v by_o the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n otherwise_o as_o touch_v this_o point_n we_o can_v embrace_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 18_o but_o there_o be_v another_o thing_n about_o which_o there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n a_o more_o weighty_a controversy_n life_n they_o that_o defend_v merit_n say_v that_o good_a work_n be_v sufficient_a to_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n they_o which_o defend_v merit_n do_v think_v that_o the_o good_a work_n which_o be_v give_v of_o god_n unto_o man_n be_v sufficient_a unto_o eternal_a life_n which_o thing_n we_o utterlie_o deny_v and_o that_o make_v very_o much_o on_o our_o side_n which_o a_o little_a before_o we_o allege_v out_o of_o augustine_n that_o in_o the_o last_o judgement_n we_o shall_v need_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n not_o only_o because_o good_a work_n be_v give_v of_o he_o free_o but_o because_o also_o that_o when_o the_o just_a judge_n shall_v sit_v in_o his_o throne_n no_o man_n can_v boast_v that_o he_o have_v a_o chaste_a hart_n or_o that_o he_o be_v clean_o from_o sin_n wherefore_o it_o be_v needful_a that_o
christ_n say_v you_o can_v serve_v god_n and_o mammon_n for_o no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o master_n paul_n also_o say_v that_o light_n have_v no_o fellowship_n with_o darkness_n 14_o 2._o cor._n 6_o 14_o neither_o have_v god_n any_o agreement_n with_o belial_n the_o very_a same_o also_o he_o proove_v out_o of_o genesis_n although_o he_o follow_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n thus_o say_v he_o speak_v god_n unto_o cain_n 7._o gen._n 4_o 7._o if_o thou_o offer_v well_o and_o divide_v ill_a thou_o have_v sin_v be_v content_a the_o sense_n say_v he_o be_v if_o thou_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o touch_v the_o outward_a show_n and_o thy_o mind_n be_v not_o right_a neither_o regard_v thou_o the_o end_n which_o thou_o ought_v to_o do_v then_o be_v thy_o oblation_n sin_n with_o this_o say_n agree_v that_o also_o which_o esaie_n write_v in_o the_o 66._o chapter_n 3._o verse_n 3._o he_o which_o kill_v a_o ox_n be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v kill_v a_o man_n and_o he_o which_o sacrifice_v a_o beast_n be_v as_o though_o he_o shall_v kill_v a_o dog_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o do_v a_o work_n which_o be_v goodly_a and_o beautiful_a to_o the_o eye_n but_o it_o behoove_v also_o that_o thou_o apply_v it_o unto_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v that_o whatsoever_o thou_o do_v let_v it_o be_v do_v in_o such_o manner_n and_o in_o such_o condition_n as_o the_o law_n require_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o paul_n say_v 3._o 2._o tim._n 2_o 3._o that_o none_o shall_v be_v crown_v but_o he_o which_o have_v wrestle_v lawful_o now_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o wrestle_v unless_o thou_o wrestle_v lawful_o 46._o mat._n 24_o 46._o christ_n also_o in_o the_o gospel_n say_v blessed_n be_v that_o servant_n which_o when_o his_o lord_n come_v he_o shall_v find_v he_o thus_o do_v by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o do_v but_o it_o behoove_v also_o to_o do_v even_o so_o as_o he_o have_v command_v 5._o deut._n 12_o 5._o moreover_o he_o show_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o he_o have_v commit_v sin_n which_o do_v sacrifice_n unto_o the_o true_a god_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n or_o not_o in_o that_o place_n where_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v for_o although_o that_o be_v sacrify_v which_o be_v command_v in_o the_o law_n yet_o be_v the_o condition_n as_o touch_v the_o place_n unperformed_a which_o the_o law_n also_o require_v and_o if_o any_o man_n have_v either_o in_o the_o temple_n or_o in_o that_o place_n where_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v kill_v a_o offering_n which_o have_v any_o spot_n the_o same_o man_n also_o have_v commit_v sin_n because_o he_o neglect_v a_o necessary_a condition_n he_o also_o cit_v that_o say_n in_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n 13._o mat._n 15_o 8._o esai_n 29_o 13._o this_o people_n honour_v i_o with_o their_o lip_n but_o their_o hart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o and_o he_o think_v that_o to_o the_o same_o end_n tend_v that_o which_o paul_n write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 2._o rom._n 10_o 2._o they_o have_v in_o deed_n the_o zeal_n of_o god_n but_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n and_o that_o which_o he_o write_v of_o himself_o unto_o the_o philippian_n 7._o phil._n 2_o 7._o that_o he_o count_v for_o off-scowrings_a doong_n and_o loss_n all_o those_o his_o work_n which_o he_o do_v when_o he_o live_v under_o the_o law_n yea_o and_o that_o without_o blame_n see_v therefore_o the_o affection_n and_o scope_n be_v take_v away_o from_o work_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o they_o what_o let_v be_v there_o then_o but_o that_o they_o be_v sin_n and_o be_v displease_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o think_v that_o do_v serve_v which_o paul_n write_v unto_o the_o corinthian_n 3._o 1._o cor._n 13_o 3._o if_o i_o deliver_v my_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v and_o if_o i_o distribute_v all_o my_o god_n to_o the_o poor_a yet_o if_o i_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o wherefore_o unless_o these_o man_n will_v ascribe_v unto_o man_n not_o yet_o regenerate_v faith_n and_o charity_n they_o must_v of_o necessity_n grant_v that_o they_o can_v do_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o sin_n or_o be_v not_o displease_v unto_o god_n and_o thus_o far_o out_o of_o basilius_n gregorius_n nazianzenus_n nazianzen_n gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o that_o oration_n which_o he_o make_v after_o he_o return_v out_o of_o the_o country_n the_o thing_n be_v end_v which_o be_v do_v against_o maximus_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o work_n accept_v or_o allow_v before_o god_n without_o faith_n whether_o it_o be_v do_v through_o the_o desire_n of_o vainglory_n or_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n in_o that_o respect_n that_o a_o man_n do_v judge_v it_o to_o be_v honest_a here_o this_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o work_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n that_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n because_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v honest_a be_v dead_a neither_o can_v it_o please_v god_n the_o self-same_a sentence_n have_v he_o in_o his_o oration_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la lavacro_fw-la towards_o the_o end_n and_o in_o both_o place_n he_o add_v even_o as_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a so_o a_o work_n without_o faith_n be_v dead_a also_o and_o if_o it_o be_v dead_a how_o can_v it_o as_o these_o man_n will_v have_v it_o merit_v justification_n but_o by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o these_o two_o father_n although_o otherwise_o they_o be_v great_a exacter_n of_o work_n and_o patron_n of_o fréewill_n yet_o as_o touch_v this_o thing_n they_o be_v altogether_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n that_o we_o be_v of_o 38_o but_o augustine_n most_o manifest_o of_o all_o teach_v the_o same_o augustine_n augustine_n in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o julianus_n the_o 3._o chapter_n in_o which_o place_n he_o intreat_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o gentile_n 14._o rom._n 2_o 14._o which_o have_v not_o the_o law_n do_v by_o nature_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n these_o word_n say_v he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v either_o of_o the_o church_n convert_v unto_o christ_n who_o now_o fulfil_v the_o law_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o so_o that_o which_o he_o say_v by_o nature_n be_v no_o otherwise_o to_o be_v understand_v than_o that_o the_o law_n be_v exclude_v but_o he_o mean_v such_o a_o nature_n as_o be_v now_o correct_v and_o amend_v by_o the_o spirit_n which_o regenerate_v or_o else_o say_v he_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v those_o word_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o gentile_n be_v yet_o unbeléever_v thou_o must_v say_v that_o they_o by_o nature_n fulfil_v the_o law_n not_o in_o deed_n so_o much_o as_o it_o require_v but_o after_o a_o sort_n neither_o do_v that_o outward_a and_o civil_a righteousness_n any_o further_a profit_n they_o but_o to_o be_v more_o tollerablie_o punish_v than_o other_o which_o utterlie_o cast_v away_o all_o discipline_n live_v wicked_o and_o beastly_a for_o we_o judge_v that_o fabricius_n be_v less_o punish_v than_o catiline_n unless_o peradventure_o say_v he_o the_o pelagian_n have_v prepare_v for_o the_o fabricij_fw-la reguli_fw-la fabius_n camili_fw-la and_o scipio_n some_o middle_a place_n between_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o hell_n of_o the_o damn_a even_o such_o a_o place_n say_v he_o as_o they_o have_v frame_v for_o young_a infant_n which_o depart_v without_o christ_n in_o brief_a he_o conclude_v 6._o heb._n 11_o 6._o that_o forsomuch_o as_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n infidel_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n have_v true_a virtue_n which_o sentence_n the_o pelagian_o so_o deride_v that_o they_o say_v if_o the_o chastity_n of_o infidel_n be_v not_o true_a chastity_n neither_o be_v their_o body_n true_a body_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n neither_o be_v the_o corn_n which_o grow_v in_o their_o field_n true_a corn_n augustine_n confute_v they_o and_z show_v that_o this_o be_v no_o apt_a similitude_n for_o the_o body_n of_o infidel_n forsomuch_o as_o they_o be_v make_v by_o god_n be_v true_a body_n their_o corn_n also_o see_v it_o be_v his_o work_n be_v very_a corn_n but_o their_o chastity_n forsomuch_o as_o it_o proceed_v out_o of_o their_o corrupt_a and_o defile_a will_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v count_v true_a chastity_n and_o he_o add_v that_o universal_a sentence_n whereof_o we_o have_v much_o speak_v before_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n 23._o rom._n 14_o 23._o be_v sin_n the_o same_o augustine_n upon_o the_o 30._o psalm_n expound_v these_o word_n deliver_v i_o in_o thy_o righteousness_n 2._o psal_n 31_o 2._o who_o say_v he_o be_v save_v free_o even_o he_o in_o who_o our_o saviour_n find_v not_o any_o thing_n
nature_n or_o dignity_n of_o person_n since_o rather_o he_o put_v upon_o we_o all_o such_o person_n as_o it_o have_v please_v he_o otherwise_o if_o respect_n be_v have_v unto_o our_o original_n we_o be_v all_o equal_a and_o derive_v all_o from_o one_o clod_n of_o earth_n god_n we_o can_v perform_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o by_o god_n 18_o they_o say_v also_o that_o whereas_o god_n lay_v before_o we_o two_o kind_n of_o life_n namely_o matrimony_n or_o sole_a life_n unless_o he_o shall_v permit_v we_o to_o have_v a_o free_a choice_n he_o may_v seem_v to_o dally_v and_o in_o vain_a to_o set_v forth_o those_o thing_n unto_o us._n if_o this_o kind_n of_o reason_v be_v effectual_a a_o man_n may_v say_v see_v life_n and_o death_n be_v set_v before_o we_o by_o god_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n there_o be_v strength_n natural_o present_a whereby_o we_o challenge_v unto_o ourselves_o life_n refuse_v death_n and_o whereas_o in_o like_a manner_n there_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o either_o the_o observe_v or_o transgress_v of_o god_n commandment_n there_o be_v liberty_n grant_v and_o strength_n sufficient_a in_o we_o to_o put_v in_o execution_n either_o of_o they_o at_o our_o own_o pleasure_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o it_o appear_v most_o manifest_o that_o none_o without_o the_o singular_a grace_n of_o god_n can_v keep_v the_o commandment_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n even_o as_o a_o sick_a man_n although_o that_o health_n be_v propound_v unto_o he_o can_v never_o of_o his_o own_o bare_a and_o simple_a choice_n recover_v health_n without_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o physician_n and_o medicine_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n further_o whereas_o there_o be_v sundry_a art_n and_o function_n of_o man_n life_n which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o yet_o be_v we_o not_o all_o fit_a for_o they_o neither_o have_v we_o equal_a strength_n and_o power_n to_o compass_v they_o there_o be_v some_o which_o be_v altogether_o unapt_a to_o learn_v law_n or_o physical_a science_n or_o language_n or_o honest_a art_n because_o perhaps_o they_o want_v memory_n wit_n or_o industry_n and_o to_o other_o which_o be_v of_o the_o weak_a sort_n it_o will_v be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o feat_n of_o war_n or_o the_o shipmens_n cunning_a wherefore_o touch_v virginity_n or_o sole_a life_n there_o be_v no_o commandment_n extant_a which_o be_v not_o convenient_a for_o all_o man_n every_o one_o ought_v in_o himself_o to_o do_v that_o which_o we_o see_v the_o wise_a sort_n of_o parent_n neglect_v not_o to_o do_v towards_o their_o child_n when_o they_o be_v to_o put_v they_o to_o any_o art_n or_o occupation_n very_o they_o search_v out_o what_o they_o can_v do_v whereunto_o they_o be_v apt_a and_o able_a which_o be_v know_v they_o determine_v of_o they_o as_o they_o shall_v see_v they_o natural_o give_v and_o make_v thereunto_o wherefore_o let_v we_o not_o deal_v unaduisedlie_o but_o let_v we_o earnest_o desire_n god_n by_o prayer_n that_o he_o will_v show_v we_o what_o kind_n of_o life_n may_v be_v most_o convenient_a for_o our_o salvation_n &_o that_o it_o may_v be_v conformable_a to_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v and_o god_n will_v not_o fail_v they_o which_o inquire_v and_o ask_v counsel_n of_o he_o 19_o they_o uniustlie_o accuse_v we_o fasting_n we_o despise_v not_o prayer_n &_o fasting_n as_o though_o we_o despise_v prayer_n and_o fasting_n which_o thing_n they_o speak_v not_o true_o see_v we_o know_v that_o chastity_n be_v convenient_a both_o for_o matrimony_n &_o for_o sole_a life_n neither_o do_v we_o think_v that_o it_o can_v be_v have_v unless_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o god_n but_o this_o we_o say_v and_o constant_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rash_a part_n for_o we_o to_o will_v and_o go_v about_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o he_o in_o what_o state_n he_o shall_v place_v and_o appoint_v we_o when_o we_o burn_v and_o be_v tempt_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o we_o be_v overcome_v do_v yield_v ourselves_o unto_o lust_n leave_v matrimony_n which_o we_o may_v use_v as_o a_o just_a remedy_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o give_v ourselves_o so_o long_o to_o prayer_n and_o fast_v until_o we_o win_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o he_o at_o our_o own_o choice_n will_v have_v we_o not_o chaste_a marry_v folk_n but_o continent_n sole_a liver_n himself_o in_o thing_n indifferent_a god_n do_v not_o always_o grant_v the_o suppliant_a that_o which_o he_o judge_v good_a for_o himself_o in_o these_o indifferent_a thing_n we_o obtain_v not_o always_o that_o which_o we_o ourselves_o think_v to_o be_v good_a for_o we_o but_o rather_o that_o which_o god_n know_v do_v make_v most_o for_o the_o sanctifieng_v of_o his_o own_o name_n paul_n pray_v to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o sting_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o from_o satan_n which_o buffet_v he_o but_o he_o hear_v that_o grace_n shall_v suffice_v he_o 20_o they_o also_o which_o serve_v this_o or_o that_o saint_n objection_n a_o objection_n argue_v after_o this_o manner_n god_n grant_v a_o sole_a life_n unto_o paul_n unto_o john_n therefore_o the_o same_o be_v grant_v unto_o all_o i_o answer_v answer_n a_o answer_n that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a cold_a cavillation_n see_v there_o be_v bring_v no_o full_a and_o perfect_a induction_n for_o as_o touch_v some_o perfect_a the_o induction_n be_v not_o perfect_a it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o god_n give_v particular_o unto_o they_o the_o gift_n of_o sole_a life_n but_o that_o it_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v of_o all_o man_n alike_o it_o be_v both_o false_a and_o against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n partly_o in_o matthew_n and_o partly_o in_o paul_n also_o there_o be_v a_o place_n bring_v by_o they_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n i_o may_v do_v allthing_n in_o christ_n 4._o phil._n 13_o 4._o who_o strengthen_v i_o but_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n be_v not_o general_o to_o be_v take_v for_o paul_n be_v mind_v 24._o a_o place_n to_o the_o philippian_n discuss_v phil._n 1_o 24_o and_o 2_o 24._o as_o it_o be_v there_o write_v to_o have_v abide_v long_o with_o the_o philippian_n who_o nevertheless_o can_v not_o escape_v the_o persecution_n of_o nero_n the_o emperor_n also_o he_o desire_v to_o have_v the_o law_n of_o his_o member_n take_v away_o 24._o rom._n 7_o 24._o which_o resist_v the_o law_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o may_v not_o be_v so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v here_o wherefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n speak_v of_o hunger_n thirst_n penury_n poverty_n and_o final_o of_o the_o cross_n which_o christ_n daily_o lay_v upon_o he_o to_o bear_v these_o thing_n he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o endure_v through_o christ_n but_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o man_n by_o their_o own_o rashness_n do_v willing_o lie_v upon_o themselves_o it_o be_v your_o own_o lithernesse_n say_v they_o for_o if_o you_o will_v no_o doubt_n but_o you_o may_v repel_v from_o you_o the_o burn_a and_o sting_n which_o you_o allege_v for_o a_o excuse_n here_o we_o demand_v again_o of_o they_o that_o when_o a_o man_n do_v that_o shake_v off_o all_o slothfulness_n which_o other_o man_n do_v not_o whether_o he_o have_v that_o which_o he_o have_v of_o himself_o or_o of_o god_n beware_v thou_o say_v not_o of_o himself_o for_o then_o shall_v thou_o discover_v thyself_o to_o be_v a_o pelagian_n and_o if_o thou_o say_v of_o god_n then_o of_o necessity_n thou_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v something_o in_o he_o which_o be_v not_o grant_v unto_o other_o man_n and_o that_o be_v even_o the_o same_o which_o we_o speak_v of_o certeinlie_o a_o miserable_a thing_n be_v the_o deride_v which_o they_o make_v of_o we_o when_o we_o use_v to_o name_v the_o word_n gift_n or_o vocation_n and_o they_o say_v that_o these_o be_v dream_n and_o imagination_n of_o our_o own_o howbeit_o these_o man_n shall_v know_v that_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o schooledoctor_n have_v not_o speak_v on_o this_o wise_a howbeit_o the_o faithful_a and_o such_o as_o be_v very_o godly_a and_o sincere_a have_v not_o be_v ashamed_a to_o use_v these_o term_n calling_n the_o name_n of_o gift_n and_o calling_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v speak_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o name_n of_o call_v be_v use_v by_o esaie_n in_o like_a manner_n by_o jeremie_n and_o the_o other_o prophet_n 15._o esai_n 49_o 1._o jere._n 7_o 13._o joel._n 2_o 32._o rom._n 8_o 29._o rom._n 9_o 12._o rom._n 11_o 29_o 1._o cor._n 7_o 20._o gala._n 1_o 15._o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o 8._o 9_o and_o 11._o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n also_o in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o
it_o shall_v be_v say_v elsewhere_o but_o admit_v we_o shall_v grant_v these_o scourge_n of_o god_n to_o be_v punishment_n yet_o do_v they_o nothing_o further_o our_o adversary_n for_o so_o much_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v temporal_a punishment_n the_o which_o god_n have_v not_o put_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v order_v by_o they_o see_v god_n have_v distribute_v they_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n and_o do_v oftentimes_o turn_v they_o away_o or_o mitigate_v they_o according_a as_o he_o be_v call_v upon_o by_o the_o saint_n and_o as_o he_o see_v they_o to_o be_v convert_v unto_o he_o earnest_o and_o with_o true_a repentance_n as_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v in_o ezechias_n and_o in_o the_o ninivit_n in_o which_o sense_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v which_o be_v write_v in_o daniel_n 24._o dan._n 4_o 24._o redeem_v thou_o thy_o sin_n with_o alm_n declare_v a_o place_n of_o daniel_n declare_v that_o be_v to_o say_v thy_o punishment_n which_o remain_v by_o the_o severity_n of_o god_n judgement_n or_o else_o understand_v the_o same_o on_o this_o wise_a even_o as_o thou_o have_v afflict_v the_o poor_a and_o have_v oppress_v they_o that_o be_v weak_a so_o on_o the_o other_o part_n revenger_n god_n puni●…eth_v not_o the_o godly_a as_o a_o revenger_n take_v thou_o pity_v upon_o they_o so_o that_o to_o redeem_v be_v to_o put_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o the_o place_n of_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a god_n punish_v not_o the_o faithful_a sort_n like_o a_o revenger_n &_o judge_n but_o he_o chastine_v they_o as_o a_o father_n neither_o do_v he_o always_o &_o of_o all_o man_n exact_a punishment_n after_o sin_n be_v forgive_v for_o he_o have_v forgive_v many_o sin_n to_o many_o without_o lay_v those_o punishment_n upon_o they_o for_o unto_o the_o thief_n he_o say_v 43_o luke_n 23_o 43_o this_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n and_o the_o publican_n which_o pray_v have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o a_o sinner_n 13_o luke_n 18_o 13_o go_v his_o way_n justify_v and_o peter_n when_o he_o have_v forswear_a christ_n only_o weep_v 62._o luke_n 23_o 62._o and_o be_v receive_v into_o grace_n whereupon_o as_o touch_v his_o repentance_n ambrose_n write_v ambrose_n ambrose_n i_o read_v of_o the_o tear_n of_o peter_n but_o i_o read_v not_o of_o his_o satisfaction_n also_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o the_o man_n sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n son_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o 5._o matth._n 9_o 5._o neither_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v any_o other_o thing_n of_o he_o 20_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o object_n that_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v a_o sinner_n 48._o luke_n ●_o 37_o and_o 48._o do_v therefore_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n because_o she_o wash_v the_o lord_n foot_n with_o her_o tear_n and_o wipe_v they_o with_o the_o hair_n of_o her_o head_n and_o anoint_v he_o with_o precious_a ointment_n they_o cry_v out_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n howbeit_o these_o man_n ought_v to_o consider_v respect_n the_o woman_n be_v forgive_v her_o sin_n in_o two_o respect_n that_o our_o saviour_n show_v how_o sin_n be_v forgive_v to_o that_o woman_n in_o two_o respect_n first_o when_o he_o say_v unto_o she_o thy_o faith_n have_v make_v thou_o whole_a and_o this_o way_n be_v a_o right_a way_n as_o a_o effect_n proceed_v from_o the_o cause_n namely_o from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o that_o woman_n comprehend_v by_o faith_n further_o unto_o the_o pharisie_n which_o can_v not_o perceive_v the_o faith_n that_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o woman_n mind_n he_o show_v that_o her_o sin_n be_v pardon_v and_o forgive_v she_o for_o another_o cause_n to_o wit_n that_o see_v he_o love_v most_o to_o who_o most_o be_v forgive_v and_o that_o the_o pharisie_n see_v that_o that_o woman_n love_v christ_n more_o than_o he_o do_v he_o may_v thereby_o know_v that_o she_o be_v no_o long_o a_o sinner_n but_o a_o true_a justify_v woman_n and_o he_o show_v by_o token_n of_o charity_n that_o she_o most_o love_a he_o the_o which_o token_n she_o do_v at_o his_o foot_n it_o the_o effect_n of_o charity_n do_v follow_v justification_n not_o go_v before_o it_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o these_o effect_n of_o love_n which_o these_o man_n call_v satisfaction_n be_v not_o do_v before_o justification_n but_o do_v rather_o follow_v after_o the_o same_o 21_o and_o whereas_o these_o man_n feign_v that_o soul_n do_v satisfy_v through_o pain_n and_o torment_n in_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n they_o be_v very_o repugnant_a unto_o the_o say_n of_o cyprian_a who_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n against_o demetrianus_n write_v when_o we_o shall_v pass_v from_o hence_o there_o shall_v neither_o be_v place_n for_o repentance_n neither_o yet_o effect_v of_o satisfaction_n the_o adversary_n be_v wont_v to_o pretend_v unto_o this_o their_o opinion_n a_o endeavour_n of_o pity_n because_o they_o will_v not_o esteem_v they_o to_o be_v damn_v which_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n when_o as_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v be_v detain_v in_o some_o blemish_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a pity_n which_o do_v drive_v we_o to_o decree_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o whether_o they_o make_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o can_v be_v show_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n further_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o strength_n and_o with_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o we_o ought_v neither_o to_o appoint_v nor_o begin_v any_o thing_n which_o we_o know_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v by_o he_o or_o that_o shall_v make_v to_o his_o glory_n but_o purgatory_n make_v many_o to_o be_v negligent_a of_o live_v well_o well_o purgatory_n make_v many_o negligent_a of_o live_v well_o because_o they_o suppose_v that_o by_o their_o riches_n they_o may_v easy_o purchase_v man_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o when_o they_o be_v dead_a the_o very_a which_o inconvenience_n follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o origin_n wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o punishment_n of_o damn_a soul_n shall_v at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o finish_v whereby_o appear_v that_o this_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n neither_o edify_v the_o church_n neither_o yet_o provoke_v man_n unto_o godly_a life_n purgatory_n many_o other_o inconvenience_n by_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o prudentlie_o devise_v and_o further_o by_o this_o devise_n many_o poor_a folk_n be_v defraud_v of_o just_a alm_n and_o a_o intolerable_a market_n of_o pope_n pardon_n break_v forth_o also_o by_o this_o abuse_n be_v maintain_v the_o slothfulness_n of_o monk_n &_o popish_a priest_n who_o that_o they_o may_v be_v well_o maintain_v and_o that_o through_o their_o prayer_n they_o may_v release_v the_o pain_n of_o man_n soul_n in_o purgatory_n the_o right_a heir_n in_o undutiful_a testament_n be_v skip_v over_o so_o as_o all_o thing_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v give_v to_o the_o fat_a paunch_n of_o these_o man_n here_o be_v all_o thing_n uncerteine_a they_o which_o judge_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o forthwith_o admit_v into_o the_o heavenly_a rest_n how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o such_o person_n be_v torment_v by_o fire_n unto_o who_o also_o if_o thou_o shall_v grant_v that_o they_o be_v afflict_v with_o flame_n how_o will_v they_o prove_v that_o they_o can_v be_v holpen_v by_o our_o prayer_n and_o suit_n 22_o but_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v suffer_v the_o suspicion_n of_o man_n to_o take_v place_n perhaps_o some_o will_v be_v find_v which_o for_o purgatory_n will_v appoint_v as_o i_o may_v say_v a_o eruditorie_a or_o instruct_v place_n wherein_o the_o soul_n of_o infidel_n which_o in_o this_o life_n hard_o nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o rude_a person_n and_o of_o infant_n which_o be_v never_o teach_v may_v yet_o there_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a learn_v and_o obtain_v a_o occasion_n of_o beléeve_v for_o unto_o some_o it_o will_v seem_v a_o unméet_a thing_n that_o either_o ignorant_a man_n shall_v be_v damn_v eternal_o or_o else_o that_o those_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o adorn_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o many_o other_o such_o thing_n see_v there_o be_v a_o abundance_n of_o error_n may_v be_v feign_v now_o have_v we_o see_v that_o purgatory_n be_v no_o opinion_n necessary_a to_o be_v beléeve_v further_o if_o by_o suspect_n &_o opinion_n it_o be_v receive_v it_o have_v weak_a and_o slender_a reason_n to_o cleave_v unto_o and_o it_o rather_o hinder_v godliness_n than_o further_v the_o same_o wherefore_o they_o which_o be_v of_o a_o opinion_n that_o there_o be_v
to_o sing_v hymn_n before_o day_n unto_o their_o christ_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v overpass_o that_o these_o word_n be_v write_v in_o the_o same_o time_n that_o john_n the_o evangelist_n live_v for_o he_o remain_v alive_a until_o the_o time_n of_o trajan_n time_n sing_v in_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n wherefore_o if_o one_o will_v say_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v sing_v in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n he_o shall_v not_o stray_v from_o the_o truth_n paul_n be_v before_o these_o time_n say_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n be_v not_o fill_v with_o wine_n 18._o ephe._n 5_o 18._o wherein_o be_v wantonness_n but_o be_v you_o fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o yourselves_o in_o psalm_n hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v in_o your_o hart_n give_v thanks_o always_o unto_o god_n for_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n against_o wine_n the_o apostle_n oppose_v the_o spirit_n and_o he_o pluck_v we_o away_o from_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o sense_n when_o he_o will_v have_v christian_n in_o steed_n of_o wine_n to_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n for_o in_o wine_n as_o he_o say_v be_v wantonness_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n be_v true_a and_o perfect_a joy_n droonkard_n talk_v more_o than_o enough_o but_o yet_o foolish_a and_o vain_a thing_n speak_v you_o say_v he_o but_o yet_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o mouth_n but_o in_o hart_n for_o the_o voice_n sound_v in_o vain_a where_o the_o mind_n be_v not_o affect_v they_o which_o be_v fill_v with_o wine_n speak_v foolish_a foul_a and_o blasphemous_a thing_n but_o give_v you_o thanks_o to_o god_n always_o i_o say_v and_o for_o all_o thing_n to_o this_o end_n doubtless_o ought_v the_o ecclesiastical_a song_n to_o tend_v also_o to_o the_o colossian_n be_v write_v certain_a thing_n not_o disagrée_v from_o these_o 16._o col._n 3_o 16._o let_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o apostle_n abound_v plentifullie_o among_o you_o teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o in_o psalm_n hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v with_o grace_n in_o your_o heart_n in_o these_o word_n paul_n express_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o our_o song_n shall_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o must_v abound_v plentifullie_o in_o we_o and_o they_o must_v not_o only_o serve_v for_o give_v of_o thanks_o but_o also_o for_o teach_v and_o admonish_v and_o then_o it_o be_v add_v with_o grace_n which_o must_v be_v so_o understand_v as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v apt_o and_o proper_o both_o to_o the_o sense_n and_o to_o the_o measure_n and_o also_o unto_o the_o voice_n let_v they_o not_o sing_v rude_a and_o rustical_a thing_n neither_o yet_o so_o immoderatelie_o as_o common_a minstrel_n do_v in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 26_o verse_n 26_o the_o 14._o chapter_n where_o he_o intreat_v of_o a_o holy_a congregation_n the_o same_o apostle_n write_v actor_n this_o manner_n when_o you_o assemble_v together_o according_a as_o every_o one_o of_o you_o have_v a_o psalm_n or_o doctrine_n or_o a_o tongue_n or_o revelation_n or_o interpretation_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v unto_o edifieng_v by_o which_o word_n be_v declare_v that_o singer_n of_o song_n and_o psalm_n have_v their_o place_n in_o the_o church_n augustine_n west_n church_n augustine_n but_o the_o west_n church_n more_o late_o receive_v the_o manner_n of_o sing_v for_o augustine_n in_o his_o nine_o book_n of_o confession_n testify_v that_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o ambrose_n for_o when_o that_o holy_a man_n together_o with_o the_o people_n watch_v even_o in_o the_o church_n lest_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v betray_v to_o the_o arrian_n he_o bring_v in_o sing_v to_o avoid_v tediousness_n &_o to_o pass_v away_o the_o time_n 28_o but_o as_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o song_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v retain_v in_o church_n music_n these_o thing_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v note_v augustine_n augustine_n augustine_n in_o the_o same_o book_n of_o confession_n both_o confess_v and_o be_v sorry_a that_o he_o have_v sometime_o fall_v in_o that_o he_o have_v give_v attentive_a heed_n unto_o the_o measure_n and_o time_n of_o music_n more_o than_o unto_o the_o word_n which_o be_v utter_v under_o they_o which_o hereby_o he_o proove_v to_o be_v sin_n because_o measure_n and_o sing_v be_v bring_v in_o for_o the_o word_n sake_n and_o not_o word_n for_o music_n sake_n and_o he_o so_o repent_v he_o of_o his_o fault_n that_o the_o earnest_o allow_v the_o manner_n which_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n use_v under_o athanasius_n alexandria_n the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n for_o he_o command_v the_o reader_n that_o when_o he_o sing_v he_o shall_v alter_v his_o voice_n but_o a_o little_a so_o as_o he_o may_v rather_o be_v like_a unto_o one_o that_o read_v than_o unto_o one_o that_o sing_v howbeit_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n when_o he_o consider_v how_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o conversion_n he_o be_v inwardlie_o move_v with_o these_o song_n namely_o that_o through_o the_o zeal_n of_o godliness_n he_o burst_v forth_o into_o tear_n for_o this_o cause_n i_o say_v he_o consent_v that_o music_n shall_v be_v retain_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o change_v his_o mind_n if_o a_o better_a reason_n can_v be_v make_v and_o he_o add_v that_o those_o do_v sin_n penallie_o as_o he_o speak_v which_o give_v great_a he●…_n unto_o music_n than_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o god._n unto_o which_o say_v jerom_n do_v plain_o agree_v jerom._n jerom._n as_o he_o have_v note_v upon_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n also_o gregorius_n romanus_n gregory_n gregory_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o rome_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n and_o both_o their_o word_n be_v write_v in_o the_o decree_n distinct_a 92._o in_o the_o chapter_n cantantes_fw-la and_o in_o the_o chapter_n in_o sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la in_o the_o very_a which_o place_n we_o read_v in_o the_o gloss_n these_o two_o verse_n indeed_o not_o eloquent_a but_o godly_a non_fw-la vox_fw-la sed_fw-la votum_fw-la non_fw-la chordula_fw-la musica_fw-la sed_fw-la cor_fw-la non_fw-la clamour_n sed_fw-la amor_fw-la cantat_fw-la in_o aure_fw-la dei_fw-la that_o be_v not_o the_o voice_n but_o the_o desire_n not_o the_o musical_a tune_n but_o the_o hart_n not_o cry_v but_o love_v sound_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o word_n of_o gregory_n this_o must_v not_o be_v slightlie_o pass_v over_o where_o he_o say_v that_o while_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o tune_n be_v seek_v for_o the_o life_n be_v neglect_v and_o when_o naughty_a manner_n provoke_v god_n the_o people_n be_v ravish_v with_o pleasantness_n of_o the_o voice_n 29_o but_o now_o let_v we_o declare_v the_o caution_n which_o i_o think_v shall_v be_v use_v that_o we_o may_v lawful_o and_o profitable_o use_v sing_v in_o the_o church_n music_n caution_n in_o the_o use_n of_o ecclesiastical_a music_n caution_n 1_o the_o first_o caution_n be_v that_o in_o music_n be_v not_o put_v the_o whole_a sum_n and_o effect_n of_o godliness_n and_o of_o the_o worship_v of_o god_n for_o almost_o every_o where_n in_o popish_a religion_n they_o think_v that_o they_o have_v in_o the_o church_n full_o worship_v god_n when_o they_o have_v a_o great_a while_n and_o a_o great_a deal_n sing_v and_o bellow_v caution_n 2_o further_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o we_o put_v no_o merit_n nor_o remission_n of_o sin_n therein_o for_o there_o be_v many_o priest_n &_o monk_n which_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v think_v that_o they_o have_v hereby_o very_o well_o deserve_v of_o god_n because_o they_o have_v sing_v a_o great_a number_n of_o psalm_n yea_o and_o the_o pope_n also_o and_o the_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o abbat_n when_o they_o have_v hear_v song_n of_o mass_n and_o evensong_n do_v oftentimes_o pronounce_v unto_o the_o people_n pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n caution_n 3_o also_o this_o vice_n must_v be_v take_v away_o namely_o that_o sing_v be_v not_o so_o much_o occupy_v in_o the_o church_n as_o there_o be_v almost_o no_o time_n leave_v for_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o holy_a doctrine_n as_o we_o see_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o a_o manner_n every_o where_n for_o all_o be_v so_o fill_v with_o chant_v and_o pipe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o time_n leave_v for_o preach_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o people_n depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n full_a of_o music_n &_o harmony_n but_o touch_v heavenly_a doctrine_n fast_v and_o hunger_n starve_v caution_n 4_o moreover_o so_o rich_a and_o large_a stipend_n be_v appoint_v for_o musician_n that_o either_o very_a little_a or_o in_o a_o manner_n nothing_o be_v provide_v for_o minister_n which_o labour_n
rest_v that_o we_o speak_v somewhat_o of_o the_o latin_a word_n among_o the_o ancient_a writer_n sacramentum_fw-la that_o be_v sacrament_n what_o the_o latin_n have_v signify_v by_o the_o word_n sacrament_n a_o sacrament_n signify_v a_o bond_n which_o pass_v between_o man_n by_o a_o oath_n wherefore_o we_o be_v accustom_v to_o say_v sacramento_n cum_fw-la aliquo_fw-la contendere_fw-la that_o be_v to_o contend_v with_o a_o man_n by_o a_o oath_n and_o sacramentum_fw-la militare_fw-la that_o be_v a_o oath_n which_o a_o man_n take_v when_o he_o go_v to_o warfare_n and_o perhaps_o these_o our_o mystery_n be_v therefore_o call_v sacrament_n because_o in_o they_o god_n bind_v himself_o with_o covenant_n and_o promise_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n seal_v and_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n bind_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o general_n the_o treatise_n now_o be_v not_o of_o sacrament_n in_o general_n now_o than_o we_o treat_v not_o of_o a_o mystery_n or_o sacrament_n general_o whereby_o as_o chrysostome_n say_v be_v signify_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v unknowen_a and_o unspeakable_a which_o have_v in_o it_o much_o admiration_n and_o be_v beyond_o our_o expectation_n for_o after_o that_o manner_n there_o be_v a_o huge_a number_n of_o sacrament_n for_o so_o the_o nativity_n of_o christ_n his_o resurrection_n the_o gospel_n the_o blind_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v sacrament_n but_o we_o speak_v of_o sacrament_n after_o that_o manner_n that_o paul_n speak_v of_o circumcision_n 2_o now_o because_o we_o have_v sufficient_o speak_v of_o the_o word_n sacrament_n the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n we_o will_v add_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o this_o definition_n be_v most_o receive_v a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o visible_a form_n or_o visible_a sign_n of_o a_o invisible_a grace_n be_v what_o a_o sign_n be_v and_o that_o be_v call_v a_o sign_n which_o beside_o the_o form_n which_o it_o offer_v unto_o the_o sense_n bring_v some_o other_o thing_n into_o our_o knowledge_n sign_n the_o distinction_n of_o a_o sign_n and_o a_o sign_n as_o augustine_n write_v and_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n affirm_v be_v divide_v into_o a_o natural_a sign_n and_o a_o sign_n give_v smoke_n be_v a_o natural_a sign_n of_o fire_n and_o cloud_n a_o natural_a sign_n of_o rain_n but_o a_o sign_n give_v and_o devise_v at_o our_o own_o will_n be_v diverse_a as_o letter_n word_n gesture_n beck_n and_o many_o such_o like_a and_o these_o sign_n may_v pertain_v to_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sense_n but_o consider_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v be_v either_o past_a present_a or_o to_o come_v the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n 20._o hebr._n 9_o 4._o thing_n signify_v be_v distinguish_v by_o three_o sundry_a time_n gen._n 9_o 20._o manna_n &_o the_o rod_n of_o aaron_n which_o be_v keep_v signify_v thing_n past_a for_o god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o remain_v as_o certain_a monument_n of_o thing_n past_a other_o sign_n betoken_v thing_n to_o come_v as_o the_o rainbow_n in_o the_o cloud_n which_o be_v give_v in_o the_o time_n of_o noah_n 36._o jud._n 6._o 36._o the_o fleece_n of_o gedeon_n and_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o sun_n which_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ezechias_n the_o king_n 8._o esa_n 38._o 8._o go_v backward_o 28._o exod._n 28._o sometime_o thing_n present_a be_v signify_v as_o in_o the_o garment_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o apparel_n of_o the_o levite_n in_o the_o ornament_n of_o magistrate_n &_o in_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n for_o all_o these_o signify_v the_o present_a power_n of_o god_n our_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a sign_n not_o in_o deed_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o give_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o they_o pertain_v to_o many_o sense_n for_o the_o word_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o ear_n but_o the_o note_n and_o outward_a sign_n be_v perceive_v either_o by_o sight_n or_o feel_v or_o smell_v or_o taste_v howbeit_o the_o matter_n themselves_o do_v make_v demonstration_n of_o thing_n present_a and_o thing_n past_a and_o thing_n to_o come_v for_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v now_o past_a be_v represent_v in_o they_o and_o so_o be_v the_o promise_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o in_o the_o mind_n and_o by_o faith_n be_v present_o embrace_v and_o so_o be_v the_o pureness_n of_o life_n and_o mortification_n and_o duty_n of_o charity_n which_o be_v afterward_o to_o be_v perform_v of_o us._n by_o these_o it_o be_v manifest_a what_o manner_n of_o sign_n we_o account_v sacrament_n to_o be_v but_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v better_a to_o take_v the_o definition_n out_o of_o paul_n 11._o the_o definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n out_o of_o a_o place_n of_o paul_n rom._n 4._o 11._o namely_o to_o say_v that_o sacrament_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v sealing_n up_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o seal_v the_o promise_n by_o which_o so_o that_o faith_n be_v adjoin_v unto_o they_o we_o be_v justify_v if_o a_o man_n demand_v what_o it_o be_v that_o god_n promise_v unto_o we_o sacrament_n what_o be_v the_o chief_a promise_n that_o be_v seal_v in_o a_o sacrament_n to_o answer_v brief_o it_o be_v that_o he_o will_v be_v our_o god_n the_o which_o when_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v save_v we_o and_o make_v we_o bless_v and_o happy_a this_o be_v the_o promise_n which_o be_v by_o diverse_a outward_a sign_n seal_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o this_o we_o have_v in_o the_o book_n of_o genesis_n the_o 17._o 10_o gen._n 17._o 10_o chapter_n where_o circumcision_n be_v give_v whereby_o be_v confirm_v the_o covenant_n make_v between_o god_n and_o abraham_n 33._o jere._n 31._o 33._o the_o sum_n of_o that_o promise_n be_v as_o we_o have_v say_v that_o god_n will_v be_v his_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o his_o seed_n the_o very_a which_o thing_n jeremie_n also_o testify_v as_o touch_v the_o new_a covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o law_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v write_v in_o the_o bowel_n and_o heart_n of_o the_o beléever_n but_o also_o that_o god_n will_v be_v unto_o they_o their_o god_n and_o they_o again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n shall_v be_v unto_o he_o his_o people_n thing_n sacrament_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n 3_o that_o also_o we_o will_v allow_v which_o be_v common_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n namely_o of_o outward_a sign_n which_o the_o schoolman_n count_v for_o the_o matter_n and_o of_o the_o thing_n signify_v which_o be_v chief_o express_v by_o the_o word_n adjoin_v unto_o the_o sign_n whence_o we_o may_v gather_v the_o form_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o though_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v signify_v be_v bind_v to_o the_o outward_a sign_n or_o lie_v hide_v under_o they_o otherwise_o as_o many_o as_o shall_v receive_v the_o outward_a element_n shall_v together_o therewithal_o receive_v the_o thing_n signify_v and_o it_o be_v necessary_a signify_v some_o analogy_n must_v be_v keep_v between_o the_o figure_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v that_o between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v there_o be_v keep_v some_o analogy_n that_o be_v proportion_n and_o conveniency_n for_o if_o sign_n have_v no_o similitude_n with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v then_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v sign_n of_o they_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o with_o this_o conformity_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v a_o diversity_n between_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v and_o those_o thing_n which_o signify_v which_o augustine_n most_o manifest_o teach_v against_o maximinus_n the_o arrian_n signify_v a_o diversity_n to_o be_v keep_v between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o his_o three_o book_n where_o he_o say_v that_o sacrament_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o signify_v another_o thing_n whereby_o oftentimes_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v 7_o many_o time_n be_v thing_n speak_v of_o sign_n which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o their_o nature_n a_o place_n one_o of_o the_o 1._o john_n 5._o 7_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o sign_n agree_v in_o no_o case_n with_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o but_o only_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o thing_n by_o they_o signify_v and_o he_o cit_v a_o place_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o john_n where_o this_o matter_n be_v manifest_o show_v for_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n which_o bear_v witness_v blood_n water_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o these_o three_o say_v he_o be_v one_o this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v true_a if_o we_o have_v a_o consideration_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o blood_n water_n and_o the_o spirit_n for_o these_o indeed_o be_v not_o one_o as_o they_o use_v to_o
they_o which_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n be_v transubstantiate_v and_o the_o same_o father_n in_o the_o same_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la the_o four_o chapter_n this_o we_o add_v moreover_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v bread_n shall_v by_o consecration_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o straight_o way_n if_o there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o strength_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o thing_n shall_v begin_v to_o be_v which_o be_v not_o how_o much_o rather_o be_v the_o word_n so_o effectuous_a that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v may_v remain_v and_o yet_o be_v change_v into_o a_o other_o thing_n jerome_n upon_o matthew_n say_v plain_o chrysost_n chrysost_n that_o in_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v represent_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o late_a epistle_n unto_o the_o corinthian_n say_v that_o not_o alone_o that_o which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o upon_o the_o table_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o the_o poor_a people_n unto_o who_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v good_a because_o even_o he_o that_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n say_v also_o by_o his_o word_n that_o he_o receive_v alm_n and_o be_v needy_a in_o the_o poor_a in_o his_o eleven_o homily_n upon_o matthew_n in_o his_o work_n which_o be_v call_v unperfect_a he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a vessel_n there_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o mystery_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n also_o upon_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o 27._o homily_n even_o as_o christ_n both_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o in_o the_o cup_n say_v do_v this_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o i_o the_o same_o father_n upon_o the_o 22._o psalm_n upon_o these_o word_n thou_o have_v prepare_v a_o table_n in_o my_o sight_n as_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o we_o that_o there_o be_v every_o day_n in_o the_o sacrament_n bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n unto_o they_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n emisenus_n who_o they_o cite_v the_o consecratione_n distinct_a emisenus_n emisenus_n 2._o and_o he_o seem_v to_o put_v a_o change_n of_o the_o sign_n even_o the_o selfsame_o man_n make_v mention_v of_o our_o change_n into_o christ_n augustine_n augustine_n 26_o augustine_n have_v many_o testimony_n of_o this_o matter_n upon_o the_o 82._o psalm_n this_o that_o you_o see_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v neither_o shall_v you_o drink_v this_o blood_n which_o they_o will_v pour_v out_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o which_o if_o it_o be_v spiritual_o understand_v it_o will_v quicken_v you_o de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la the_o third_o book_n and_o ten_o chapter_n the_o bread_n for_o this_o purpose_n make_v be_v eat_v up_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n shall_v go_v about_o to_o draw_v this_o say_n unto_o the_o showbread_n for_o we_o have_v show_v elsewhere_o by_o diverse_a argument_n that_o his_o interpretation_n be_v not_o right_a first_o because_o if_o thou_o follow_v the_o plain_a sense_n and_o that_o sense_n which_o at_o the_o first_o view_n offer_v itself_o unto_o thou_o and_o which_o the_o word_n make_v show_v of_o thou_o shall_v manifest_o perceive_v that_o the_o speech_n be_v of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o erasmus_n in_o the_o book_n of_o augustine_n which_o he_o mend_v write_v in_o the_o margin_n eucharist_n further_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n &_o while_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n he_o make_v so_o evident_a mention_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o even_o the_o adversary_n can_v deny_v it_o and_o of_o the_o same_o eucharist_n he_o have_v write_v before_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n when_o he_o begin_v the_o same_o treatise_n add_v herewithal_o that_o express_o in_o these_o word_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n it_o be_v plain_o call_v a_o sacrament_n which_o if_o he_o have_v mean_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v in_o common_a it_o have_v be_v no_o less_o agreeable_a unto_o those_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v reckon_v before_o namely_o unto_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o to_o the_o stone_n erect_v by_o jacob_n than_o unto_o the_o showbread_n but_o in_o those_o word_n he_o express_v not_o this_o word_n sacrament_n which_o afterward_o that_o we_o may_v understande_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o will_v not_o suppress_v last_o he_o say_v the_o bread_n make_v for_o this_o purpose_n be_v eat_v up_o in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o showbread_n for_o that_o be_v not_o make_v to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v eat_v but_o that_o they_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o table_n shall_v remain_v before_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o they_o be_v call_v in_o the_o hebrew_n panim_fw-la afterward_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o without_o regard_n or_o by_o hap_n they_o be_v eat_v least_o happy_o it_o shall_v putrify_v before_o the_o lord_n for_o therefore_o it_o be_v change_v every_o week_n and_o when_o it_o have_v be_v once_o dedicate_v unto_o god_n he_o will_v have_v this_o honour_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v eat_v of_o the_o priest_n but_o the_o bread_n of_o our_o eucharist_n be_v very_o make_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o shall_v be_v eat_v and_o unto_o the_o argument_n already_o say_v i_o add_v one_o more_o strong_a than_o the_o rest_n for_o augustine_n say_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n it_o be_v eat_v and_o not_o it_o be_v eat_v which_o it_o behoove_v to_o have_v be_v if_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o a_o figure_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la the_o 19_o chapter_n he_o call_v it_o a_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o touch_v the_o memory_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n he_o abundant_o instruct_v the_o same_o peter_n in_o the_o faith_n but_o of_o this_o transubstantiation_n which_o these_o man_n so_o great_o urge_v at_o this_o day_n he_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n against_o faustus_n in_o the_o 20._o book_n &_o the_o 21._o chapter_n he_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v promise_v to_o we_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n under_o the_o similitude_n of_o sacrifice_a beast_n upon_o the_o cross_n it_o be_v give_v in_o very_a deed_n but_o he_o say_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v celebrate_v by_o a_o memorial_n and_o in_o the_o 21._o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o 25._o chapter_n he_o plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o eat_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v say_v he_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o in_o who_o christ_n abide_v not_o neither_o do_v he_o abide_v in_o christ_n and_o the_o like_a word_n he_o have_v in_o the_o 20._o treatise_n upon_o john_n but_o in_o the_o 30._o treatise_n he_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n in_o heaven_n but_o that_o his_o truth_n be_v every_o where_o spread_v which_o he_o therefore_o speak_v because_o truth_n be_v spiritual_a and_o be_v always_o present_a with_o the_o faithful_a and_o communicant_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v do_v confess_v christ_n and_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v a_o true_a body_n &_o no_o feign_a body_n as_o the_o heretic_n think_v 27_o against_o adamantus_fw-la the_o maniche_n the_o 12._o chapter_n he_o write_v the_o lord_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o as_o yet_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n if_o thou_o say_v he_o give_v both_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v for_o augustine_n have_v not_o respect_n unto_o this_o but_o he_o will_v show_v that_o the_o say_n be_v figurative_a and_o like_v unto_o another_o which_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o deuteronomie_n the_o blood_n be_v the_o life_n 23._o deu._n 12._o 23._o therefore_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n doubt_v not_o because_o in_o trope_n or_o figure_n we_o dare_v do_v something_o in_o his_o 3._o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n the_o 16._o chapter_n he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v a_o figurative_a kind_n of_o speech_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n 35._o verse_n 35._o to_o wit_n unless_o you_o shall_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n because_o a_o wicked_a thing_n seem_v to_o be_v command_v for_o it_o be_v more_o heinous_a to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o man_n than_o to_o kill_v he_o and_o to_o drink_v blood_n than_o to_o shed_v
the_o truth_n a_o shadow_n in_o the_o law_n a_o image_n in_o the_o gospel_n the_o truth_n in_o the_o heavenly_a place_n before_o time_n a_o lamb_n be_v offer_v a_o calf_n be_v offer_v now_o christ_n be_v offer_v but_o he_o be_v offer_v as_o a_o man_n as_o it_o be_v receive_v passion_n but_o he_o offer_v himself_o as_o a_o priest_n that_o he_o may_v forgive_v our_o sin_n here_o in_o a_o image_n there_o in_o truth_n where_o as_o a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n he_o make_v intercession_n for_o us._n and_o upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n as_o we_o have_v already_o cite_v he_o say_v in_o eat_v and_o drink_v we_o signify_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v offer_v and_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o blood_n he_o say_v that_o we_o receive_v a_o figure_n thereof_o that_o be_v the_o mystical_a cup._n again_o the_o same_o father_n in_o these_o book_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la in_o the_o 4._o book_n and_o 4._o chapter_n manifest_o affirm_v our_o change_n into_o christ_n the_o which_o we_o have_v oftentimes_o note_v in_o other_o father_n 47_o now_o there_o remain_v that_o we_o consider_v of_o chrysostom_n chrysostome_n a_o exposition_n of_o chrysostome_n they_o allege_v this_o similitude_n of_o wax_n the_o which_o be_v put_v into_o the_o fire_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n there_o be_v destroy_v so_o as_o nothing_o remain_v so_o say_v he_o thou_o may_v think_v that_o the_o mystery_n be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n what_o say_v they_o can_v be_v more_o manifest_a for_o transubstantiation_n but_o here_o i_o think_v it_o good_a to_o examine_v chrysostom_n himself_o whereby_o you_o may_v plain_o perceive_v how_o right_o those_o thing_n be_v note_v whereof_o we_o speak_v before_o as_o touch_v the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n he_o in_o the_o 83_o homily_n upon_o matthew_n say_v chrysostome_n the_o excessive_a speech_n of_o chrysostome_n many_o say_v that_o they_o will_v and_o do_v covet_v to_o see_v the_o form_n and_o shape_n of_o christ_n also_o to_o behold_v his_o garment_n and_o shoe_n but_o he_o give_v himself_o unto_o thou_o not_o only_o that_o thou_o may_v see_v he_o but_o also_o that_o thou_o may_v touch_v he_o do_v we_o not_o here_o understand_v that_o he_o attribute_v unto_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o sign_n namely_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v touch_v and_o see_v which_o who_o see_v not_o to_o be_v true_a only_o as_o touch_v the_o sign_n again_o in_o the_o same_o homily_n he_o reduce_v we_o as_o i_o may_v say_v into_o one_o lump_n together_o with_o he_o and_o that_o not_o alone_o by_o faith_n but_o he_o make_v we_o in_o very_a deed_n his_o body_n and_o the_o same_o he_o write_v in_o the_o 60._o homily_n and_o in_o the_o 61._o unto_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n christ_n we_o be_v not_o only_o in_o faith_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n mix_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o i_o say_v not_o only_o by_o faith_n and_o love_n but_o also_o in_o very_a deed_n be_v make_v and_o mix_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o transubstantiate_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o so_o near_o join_v with_o christ_n what_o need_n be_v it_o for_o the_o bread_n to_o be_v transubstantiate_v that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o there_o may_v arise_v a_o doubt_n as_o though_o chrysostom_n make_v against_o we_o which_o affirm_v this_o receive_n by_o faith_n see_v he_o say_v that_o we_o not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o in_o very_a deed_n also_o be_v mingle_v with_o he_o and_o change_v into_o he_o but_o here_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o although_o we_o have_v say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v eat_v and_o drink_v by_o faith_n yet_o after_o this_o receive_n by_o faith_n there_o follow_v not_o a_o feign_a but_o a_o true_a conjunction_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n whereby_o not_o only_o our_o mind_n be_v unite_v with_o he_o but_o also_o our_o body_n and_o flesh_n have_v his_o renew_n from_o thence_o and_o we_o be_v true_o make_v the_o member_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o do_v receive_v he_o to_o be_v our_o head_n from_o whence_o we_o perpetuallie_o draw_v both_o spirit_n and_o life_n and_o this_o be_v it_o that_o chrysostom_n say_v that_o we_o be_v in_o very_a deed_n join_v with_o christ_n and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o homily_n upon_o matthew_n he_o say_v that_o these_o be_v sign_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n whereby_o we_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heretic_n which_o demand_v how_o christ_n suffer_v for_o if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v true_a flesh_n and_o have_v true_o suffer_v in_o vain_a shall_v these_o sign_n be_v in_o the_o same_o homily_n he_o say_v that_o our_o tongue_n be_v make_v bloody_a in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o lest_o thou_o shall_v cavil_v that_o the_o bloodiness_n with_o which_o together_o with_o the_o wine_n or_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o wine_n as_o they_o term_v it_o our_o tongue_n be_v make_v bloody_a shall_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v invisible_a in_o the_o 60_o homily_n which_o the_o same_o father_n have_v to_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n he_o write_v that_o our_o tongue_n wax_v read_v with_o this_o blood_n where_o every_o man_n may_v see_v that_o it_o be_v hyperbole_n or_o a_o excessive_a speech_n and_o in_o encaeniis_fw-la he_o say_v that_o the_o blood_n in_o the_o cup_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o can_v be_v beléeve_v as_o it_o be_v speak_v see_v the_o side_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v not_o at_o this_o day_n open_a and_o from_o thence_o the_o blood_n be_v not_o draw_v speech_n chrysostom_n declare_v his_o own_o excessive_a speech_n 48_o he_o write_v moreover_o in_o the_o same_o homily_n do_v thou_o see_v the_o bread_n or_o the_o wine_n he_o answer_v god_n forbid_v certain_o if_o he_o shall_v here_o ask_v the_o sense_n they_o will_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o say_v for_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o sense_n comparison_n a_o negative_a be_v sometime_o understand_v by_o a_o comparison_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v present_a but_o he_o speak_v true_o when_o he_o add_v think_v not_o so_o because_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o judgement_n bread_n and_o wine_n do_v cease_v to_o be_v there_o the_o same_o father_n write_v think_v not_o thou_o that_o thou_o receave_v of_o man_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o the_o seraphin_n that_o be_v present_a and_o with_o a_o pair_n of_o tong_n he_o deliver_v unto_o thou_o a_o fiery_a coal_n here_o i_o think_v not_o that_o they_o will_v have_v the_o minister_n or_o pastor_n to_o be_v transubstantiate_v which_o deliver_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o us._n and_o he_o add_v let_v we_o run_v together_o to_o suck_v forth_o the_o blood_n which_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o the_o lord_n these_o thing_n the_o schoolman_n themselves_o dare_v not_o speak_v for_o they_o write_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n yet_o not_o so_o as_o to_o the_o true_a substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n any_o thing_n either_o come_v or_o depart_v away_o and_o in_o the_o 61._o homily_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n not_o only_o give_v himself_o unto_o we_o to_o be_v see_v but_o also_o to_o be_v touch_v and_o feel_v upon_o who_o flesh_n also_o we_o fasten_v our_o tooth_n thing_n that_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o sign_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o thing_n in_o which_o place_n thou_o see_v that_o that_o which_o appertain_v to_o the_o sign_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o our_o tooth_n reach_v not_o unto_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o only_o unto_o the_o bread_n and_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n the_o self_n same_o father_n in_o the_o 60._o homily_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n say_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v that_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n reach_v the_o sacrament_n but_o must_v judge_v that_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n stretch_v forth_o do_v deliver_v the_o same_o and_o that_o he_o himself_o also_o in_o baptism_n execute_v the_o office_n namely_o of_o baptise_v and_o in_o the_o 61._o he_o admonish_v that_o we_o shall_v consider_v that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n we_o leave_v christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n who_o be_v woorship_v of_o the_o angel_n by_o all_o this_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o father_n of_o we_o provide_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o call_v forth_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o communicantes_fw-la from_o the_o grosser_n sort_n of_o sign_n and_o from_o outward_a
when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o his_o eat_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o gospel_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o do_v the_o other_o evangelist_n for_o that_o he_o have_v sufficient_o teach_v before_o and_o the_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o omit_v john_n in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n fulfil_v and_o there_o be_v not_o therefore_o any_o cause_n say_v they_o why_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o communion_n be_v therefore_o superfluous_a because_o in_o often_o communicate_v we_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o thanks_n give_v and_o the_o mind_n be_v stir_v up_o with_o a_o likeness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v represent_v neither_o be_v they_o dumb_a but_o speak_v sign_n which_o be_v there_o con●…_n the_o commodity_n come_v by_o the_o con●…_n further_o a_o certain_a privy_a token_n be_v there_o whereby_o the_o christian_n do_v make_v themselves_o to_o be_v join_v one_o with_o a_o other_o and_o with_o christ_n moreover_o they_o profess_v their_o faith_n as_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n nail_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o our_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o believe_v with_o the_o heart_n but_o confession_n also_o must_v be_v with_o the_o mouth_n and_o not_o only_o with_o the_o mouth_n but_o with_o outward_a action_n neither_o do_v they_o admit_v it_o as_o these_o man_n say_v that_o the_o wicked_a also_o do_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n christ_n that_o the_o wicked_a receive_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o sense_n and_o reason_n attain_v not_o unto_o it_o wherefore_o it_o remain_v that_o he_o be_v receive_v by_o faith_n whereof_o they_o be_v destitute_a can_v have_v nothing_o but_o the_o sign_n and_o paul_n write_v he_o that_o shall_v eat_v the_o bread_n unworthilie_o and_o say_v not_o he_o that_o eat_v the_o body_n unworthilie_o 77_o furthermore_o they_o wonder_v at_o they_o which_o follow_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n 26._o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v have_v by_o faith_n not_o for_o the_o work_n wrought_v of_o he_o that_o eat_v beside_o be_v the_o eat_a faith_n be_v stir_v up_o not_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o work_v but_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o cor._n 11._o ver_fw-la 24._o 25._o &_o 26._o that_o unto_o that_o corporal_a eat_n of_o christ_n they_o attribute_v remission_n of_o sin_n for_o so_o much_o as_o this_o be_v to_o admit_v opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la that_o be_v merit_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o very_a act_n of_o work_v neither_o be_v remission_n of_o sin_n have_v otherwise_o than_o by_o faith_n afterward_o they_o stick_v unto_o the_o say_n of_o paul_n when_o the_o lord_n command_v this_o to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o he_o and_o that_o his_o death_n shall_v be_v show_v which_o word_n seem_v unto_o they_o to_o declare_v the_o absence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v not_o very_o firm_a unless_o they_o mean_v as_o touch_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n real_o and_o corporal_o and_o natural_o to_o be_v present_a otherwise_o when_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o understand_v to_o be_v altogether_o absent_a although_o he_o remain_v in_o heaven_n as_o touch_v his_o nature_n and_o substance_n for_o he_o be_v spiritual_o eat_v and_o be_v true_o join_v with_o us._n moreover_o they_o cite_v the_o father_n which_o do_v plain_o pronounce_v that_o the_o type_n the_o sign_n and_o the_o figure_n here_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o they_o bring_v in_o two_o similitude_n similitude_n two_o similitude_n one_o be_v of_o a_o friend_n who_o friend_n be_v absent_a bodily_a be_v say_v to_o be_v present_a when_o he_o think_v of_o he_o the_o other_o they_o appoint_v to_o be_v of_o lookingglass_n which_o be_v about_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o man_n who_o face_n and_o countenance_n be_v multiply_v throughout_o all_o the_o glass_n although_o he_o be_v not_o move_v out_o of_o his_o place_n symilitude_n i_o grant_v these_o be_v but_o yet_o over_o can_v to_o agree_v with_o this_o mystery_n for_o a_o friend_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o cogitation_n and_o conversant_a in_o the_o mind_n change_v not_o he_o that_o think_v upon_o he_o he_o nourish_v not_o his_o mind_n neither_o yet_o do_v he_o restore_v his_o flesh_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o this_o similitude_n of_o the_o glass_n be_v a_o very_a slender_a shadow_n neither_o must_v it_o be_v compare_v to_o that_o conjunction_n which_o we_o have_v with_o christ_n for_o the_o presence_n that_o we_o confess_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n join_v therewith_o which_o most_o néerelie_o couple_v we_o unto_o he_o but_o yet_o the_o foresay_a similitude_n be_v not_o utter_o to_o be_v refuse_v see_v they_o may_v after_o a_o sort_n lead_v we_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n so_o that_o they_o make_v not_o the_o thing_n equal_a for_o they_o show_v how_o this_o receive_n may_v be_v with_o faith_n and_o with_o the_o mind_n but_o they_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o two_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n one_o be_v that_o by_o faith_n we_o apprehend_v his_o body_n be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o our_o salvation_n a_o other_o be_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o take_v our_o very_a nature_n upon_o he_o and_o so_o be_v there_o a_o natural_a conjunction_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n whereof_o there_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n to_o the_o hebrews_n 14._o verse_n 14._o but_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a three_o conjunction_n which_o we_o enter_v into_o with_o christ_n in_o eat_v of_o he_o spiritual_o whereof_o they_o do_v not_o many_o time_n speak_v although_o they_o pass_v it_o not_o over_o altogether_o in_o silence_n but_o as_o touch_v that_o we_o will_v entreat_v a_o little_a after_o now_o if_o these_o man_n be_v demand_v whether_o christ_n be_v present_a at_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v present_a howbeit_o this_o they_o speak_v by_o the_o figure_n synecdoche_n supper_n christ_n by_o his_o godhead_n be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o supper_n because_o the_o one_o part_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v his_o godhead_n be_v true_o present_a otherwise_o in_o expound_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o lord_n this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o use_v the_o figure_n metonymy_fw-la to_o wit_n the_o name_n of_o the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o they_o grant_v that_o christ_n himself_o after_o that_o sort_n be_v present_a as_o the_o son_n which_o keep_v itself_o within_o his_o own_o circle_n similitude_n a_o similitude_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o be_v say_v to_o be_v present_a with_o the_o world_n and_o to_o govern_v the_o same_o with_o his_o motion_n and_o light_n thing_n how_o present_a faith_n make_v a_o thing_n but_o how_o thorough_o faith_n may_v make_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v present_a 1._o gal._n 3._o 1._o they_o think_v that_o they_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o where_o paul_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v describe_v before_o their_o eye_n and_o crucify_a among_o they_o 78_o now_o remain_v that_o we_o show_v our_o judgement_n among_o these_o opinion_n refuse_v what_o in_o those_o opinion_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v or_o refuse_v what_o must_v be_v avoid_v and_o what_o must_v be_v receive_v not_o that_o i_o be_o mind_v to_o reproove_v either_o luther_n or_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v singular_a and_o very_a excellent_a man_n for_o as_o touch_v zuinglius_fw-la i_o certain_o know_v that_o in_o his_o book_n he_o affirm_v the_o sign_n in_o this_o sacrament_n not_o to_o be_v vain_a or_o frustrate_a sign_n as_o we_o before_o declare_v and_o it_o have_v also_o be_v report_v unto_o i_o conjunction_n that_o between_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sign_n luther_n put_v no_o other_o but_o a_o sacramental_a conjunction_n by_o all_o they_o which_o have_v have_v conference_n with_o luther_n that_o he_o in_o very_a deed_n between_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sign_n put_v no_o other_o but_o a_o sacramental_a conjunction_n but_o how_o the_o contention_n be_v grow_v &_o set_v on_o fire_n between_o they_o it_o be_v no_o time_n now_o to_o rehearse_v now_o then_o set_v these_o man_n aside_o which_o be_v never_o sufficient_o praise_v we_o will_v entreat_v of_o the_o opinion_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o and_o urge_v on_o both_o part_n wherefore_o in_o the_o first_o opinion_n allow_v what_o in_o the_o first_o opinion_n must_v not_o be_v allow_v i_o allow_v not_o that_o gross_a knit_n together_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o bread_n so_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v natural_o corporal_o and_o real_o comprehend_v therein_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n dryve_v
for_o a_o sin_n to_o the_o intent_n a_o man_n may_v follow_v his_o call_n be_v not_o to_o be_v disallow_v and_o so_o likewise_o if_o it_o be_v do_v for_o avoid_v of_o persecution_n proposition_n 2_o that_o departure_n be_v condemn_v which_o proceed_v of_o the_o hatred_n of_o man_n or_o for_o a_o desire_n of_o commodity_n and_o which_o be_v do_v for_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n proposition_n 3_o god_n not_o only_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v he_o reverence_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v also_o declare_v the_o same_o by_o outward_a token_n proposition_n 4_o since_o god_n in_o his_o own_o nature_n be_v not_o perceive_v by_o the_o sense_n yet_o do_v he_o apply_v himself_o to_o man_n capacity_n and_o by_o his_o sensible_a word_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v know_v of_o man_n in_o corporal_a form_n and_o sacrament_n proposition_n 5_o although_o it_o shall_v be_v certain_a unto_o every_o man_n that_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o unprofitable_a to_o consider_v of_o he_o under_o figure_n and_o form_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n proposition_n 6_o since_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n which_o be_v dead_a thereof_o be_v infer_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a proposition_n 7_o whereas_o the_o jew_n will_v not_o once_o name_v that_o name_n of_o god_n jehovah_n which_o be_v write_v with_o four_o letter_n it_o be_v superstitious_a proposition_n 8_o the_o power_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v only_o by_o the_o pronounce_v or_o rehearse_v thereof_o proposition_n 9_o god_n in_o command_v the_o israelit_n that_o they_o shall_v require_v of_o the_o egyptian_n gold_n silver_n garment_n and_o vessel_n command_v they_o not_o to_o steal_v albeit_o that_o god_n otherwhile_o seem_v to_o command_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o second_o table_n yet_o in_o very_a deed_n he_o command_v not_o against_o the_o same_o proposition_n 10_o there_o may_v be_v a_o good_a use_n of_o gold_n silver_n precious_a stone_n silk_n and_o such_o like_a probable_a proposition_n 1_o when_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o oftentimes_o it_o happen_v the_o name_n of_o angel_n be_v join_v with_o the_o name_n of_o god_n there_o be_v mean_v the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o son_n proposition_n 2_o the_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o show_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o consider_v he_o to_o be_v such_o a_o god_n as_o will_v not_o suffer_v his_o promise_n to_o be_v in_o vain_a proposition_n 3_o in_o this_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o be_v betoken_v the_o eternity_n of_o his_o nature_n proposition_n 4_o this_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o show_v that_o god_n be_v diverselie_o to_o be_v name_v according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o his_o action_n proposition_n 5_o this_o name_n of_o god_n i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o name_n jehovah_n proposition_n 6_o the_o hebrews_n require_v not_o the_o egyptian_n to_o lend_v they_o gold_n silver_n garment_n &c_n &c_n but_o require_v to_o have_v they_o give_v free_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o miracle_n be_v testimony_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o such_o as_o without_o regard_n they_o shall_v be_v beléeve_v proposition_n 2_o god_n give_v not_o to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o minister_n all_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v the_o more_o unite_a one_o to_o a_o other_o proposition_n 3_o domestical_a and_o civil_a duty_n be_v allow_v by_o god_n and_o must_v not_o be_v leave_v off_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n so_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a thereunto_o proposition_n 4_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o he_o that_o enter_v the_o holy_a ministry_n to_o put_v away_o his_o wife_n proposition_n 5_o the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v a_o declaration_n of_o his_o will_n as_o touch_v the_o kind_n of_o life_n or_o peculiar_a function_n whereunto_o we_o be_v appoint_v proposition_n 6_o sometime_o the_o calling_n be_v by_o god_n himself_o without_o any_o mean_n and_o sometime_o by_o those_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o a_o ordinary_a power_n proposition_n 7_o some_o be_v call_v otherwhile_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a power_n proposition_n 8_o sometime_o nature_n be_v the_o mean_a or_o instrument_n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n proposition_n 9_o in_o every_o vocation_n be_v require_v that_o he_o which_o be_v call_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o call_v he_o proposition_n 10_o to_o execute_v well_o the_o call_n of_o god_n it_o behoove_v that_o he_o which_o be_v call_v be_v certain_a thereof_o proposition_n 11_o the_o calling_n of_o god_n have_v promise_n and_o gift_n join_v with_o they_o proposition_n 12_o it_o be_v against_o the_o call_n of_o god_n as_o well_o if_o a_o man_n arrogantlie_o obtrude_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o obstinate_o resist_v it_o proposition_n 13_o many_o thing_n of_o themselves_o seem_v to_o have_v but_o small_a decency_n which_o nevertheless_o must_v be_v do_v if_o respect_n be_v have_v unto_o the_o call_n proposition_n 14_o they_o which_o neglect_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n do_v lay_v open_v themselves_o unto_o most_o gréevous_a danger_n even_o of_o the_o body_n proposition_n 15_o when_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_n be_v please_v with_o sacrifice_n that_o must_v not_o be_v understand_v for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o work_n but_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n join_v therewithal_o proposition_n out_o of_o the_o v._o vi_fw-la seven_o and_o viij_o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la necessary_a proposition_n 1_o two_o kind_n there_o be_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n one_o be_v common_a and_o be_v call_v natural_a which_o also_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o ungodlie_a a_o other_o be_v full_a and_o effectual_a whereupon_o follow_v a_o obedience_n of_o god_n law_n and_o final_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o be_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a proposition_n 2_o in_o adversity_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o man_n and_o the_o devil_n may_v be_v the_o minister_n and_o instrument_n but_o that_o they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a cause_n for_o the_o which_o we_o must_v fly_v unto_o he_o by_o prayer_n proposition_n 3_o it_o be_v sin_n no_o doubt_n to_o be_v move_v against_o god_n for_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o oppression_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o yet_o to_o express_v such_o a_o affection_n before_o god_n as_o the_o saint_n do_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v both_o profitable_a and_o just_a proposition_n 4_o although_o both_o the_o godly_a and_o ungodlie_a be_v move_v for_o the_o say_a cause_n against_o the_o judgment_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v there_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o as_o well_o such_o as_o be_v between_o the_o incontinent_a and_o intemperate_a as_o also_o because_o the_o one_o sort_n repent_v and_o the_o other_o obstinate_o persist_v in_o their_o sin_n proposition_n 5_o a_o covenant_n be_v a_o agreement_n of_o certain_a among_o themselves_o whereby_o every_o of_o they_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v something_o &_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o himself_o require_v something_o of_o other_o proposition_n 6_o miracle_n by_o themselves_o make_v no_o firm_a argument_n of_o doctrine_n unless_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n proposition_n 7_o god_n will_v otherwhile_o have_v miracle_n do_v by_o the_o adversary_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o godly_a by_o such_o kind_n of_o temptation_n may_v be_v try_v and_o that_o the_o ungodlie_a be_v the_o more_o blind_v thereby_o may_v be_v punish_v for_o their_o ungodliness_n proposition_n 8_o the_o miracle_n which_o the_o sorcerer_n of_o pharaoh_n show_v be_v not_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a cause_n of_o his_o incredulity_n proposition_n 9_o repentance_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v perfect_a and_o whole_a which_o do_v please_v god_n another_o be_v temporal_a upon_o which_o god_n bestow_v some_o thing_n the_o three_o be_v hypocritical_a the_o which_o god_n do_v detest_v probable_a proposition_n 1_o the_o name_n shadai_n if_o it_o signify_v omnipotent_a it_o ought_v chéeflie_o to_o be_v respect_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v require_v that_o we_o shall_v think_v he_o can_v perform_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v but_o the_o name_n jehovah_n when_o god_n perform_v his_o promise_n for_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o his_o essence_n and_o god_n both_o in_o act_n &_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o bring_v to_o pass_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v proposition_n 2_o if_o the_o name_n shadai_n
argument_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n be_v take_v from_o a_o wrong_a sense_n as_o augustine_n testify_v to_o vincentius_n the_o donatist_n a_o argument_n derive_v otherwise_o than_o from_o the_o literal_a sense_n be_v of_o small_a force_n to_o persuade_v any_o thing_n by_o a_o effectual_a inference_n or_o else_o it_o may_v be_v otherwise_o answer_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n which_o before_o consecration_n be_v either_o unleven_v or_o leven_v d._n martyr_n it_o be_v plain_o declare_v that_o gregory_n speak_v nothing_o allegoricallie_o in_o this_o place_n for_o it_o be_v then_o call_v into_o doubt_n and_o the_o controversy_n be_v whether_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v be_v use_v either_o unleven_v or_o leven_v gregory_n be_v consult_v hereupon_o in_o registro_fw-la set_v down_o his_o opinion_n upon_o this_o matter_n d._n tresham_n now_o do_v i_o better_o understand_v it_o than_o before_o for_o i_o remember_v the_o controversy_n and_o the_o greek_n err_v even_o until_o this_o day_n retain_v still_o leven_v bread_n but_o yet_o the_o place_n contain_v nothing_o against_o i_o for_o gregory_n will_v not_o have_v it_o to_o make_v any_o matter_n whether_o the_o bread_n whereof_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v be_v unleven_v or_o leven_v and_o it_o be_v call_v unlevened_a or_o leven_v of_o that_o which_o it_o be_v before_o d._n martyr_n i_o marvel_v that_o you_o in_o your_o answer_n do_v say_v that_o the_o greek_n do_v err_v until_o this_o day_n since_o gregory_n show_v that_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n whether_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o unlevened_a or_o of_o levened_a bread_n and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v that_o which_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v before_o consecration_n that_o agree_v not_o with_o his_o word_n for_o he_o say_v while_o we_o do_v receive_v neither_o be_v the_o sacrament_n receive_v before_o consecration_n d._n tresham_n after_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v it_o be_v name_v according_a to_o that_o thing_n whereof_o it_o be_v derive_v d._n martyr_n transubstantiation_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n acknowledge_v no_o transubstantiation_n always_o when_o similitude_n be_v bring_v in_o which_o do_v prove_v bread_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n you_o shift_v off_o those_o matter_n by_o a_o figure_n take_v from_o their_o former_a nature_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o mind_v to_o dispute_v with_o you_o after_o this_o manner_n transubstantiation_n be_v not_o declare_v nor_o prove_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o it_o must_v not_o be_v receive_v d._n tresham_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o church_n be_v compel_v to_o decree_v transubstantiation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o this_o proposition_n shall_v proper_o be_v true_a unless_o that_o this_o change_n be_v determine_v d._n martyr_n substance_n if_o the_o accident_n remain_v why_o do_v not_o the_o substance_n why_o so_o my_o think_v i_o here_o news_n now_o if_o the_o accident_n do_v remain_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n why_o not_o the_o substance_n what_o have_v the_o substance_n more_o offend_v than_o the_o accident_n that_o it_o may_v not_o abide_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o especial_o since_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o contention_n seem_v to_o be_v about_o measure_n and_o quantity_n which_o notwithstanding_o you_o retain_v for_o the_o quantity_n and_o mass_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o abolish_v d._n tresham_n therefore_o do_v not_o the_o substance_n remain_v because_o it_o do_v not_o so_o please_v christ_n the_o institutor_n of_o this_o sacrament_n christ_n may_v have_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o bread_n shall_v remain_v but_o now_o because_o of_o his_o word_n the_o same_o have_v his_o accustom_a power_n it_o can_v remain_v d._n martyr_n since_o that_o you_o answer_v i_o not_o sufficient_o i_o demand_v why_o the_o bread_n may_v not_o remain_v by_o no_o other_o mean_n say_v you_o but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o will_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o understand_v what_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n shall_v let_v neither_o do_v i_o see_v from_o whence_o you_o have_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o will_v not_o have_v bread_n to_o remain_v d._n tresham_n even_o because_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v false_a also_o it_o be_v unpossible_a out_o of_o the_o propriety_n of_o word_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n word_n wherein_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n without_o transubstantiation_n transubstantiation_n whether_o that_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n may_v be_v do_v without_o transubstantiation_n d._n martyr_n i_o can_v now_o speak_v of_o the_o figurative_a speech_n of_o that_o proposition_n whereby_o i_o may_v show_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a proposition_n as_o many_o such_o like_a be_v true_a the_o thing_n remain_v still_o as_o they_o be_v before_o but_o i_o let_v this_o pass_v and_o i_o procee_v in_o the_o question_n already_o make_v to_o wit_n why_o the_o substance_n do_v here_o perish_v rather_o than_o the_o accident_n neither_o do_v i_o hear_v any_o reason_n why_o you_o shall_v rather_o pluck_v away_o one_o of_o these_o than_o a_o other_o d._n tresham_n i_o have_v already_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a unless_o that_o a_o transubstantiation_n follow_v because_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o accident_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n moreover_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v work_v and_o effectual_a unless_o there_o be_v a_o transubstantiation_n therewithal_o and_o that_o the_o accident_n do_v evident_o appear_v to_o remain_v and_o therefore_o the_o property_n of_o the_o say_n be_v keep_v and_o put_v no_o figure_n in_o the_o word_n it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o the_o proposition_n shall_v be_v true_a unless_o that_o there_o be_v a_o transubstantiation_n admit_v d._n martyr_n i_o do_v note_n in_o your_o answer_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v true_o be_v speak_v either_o of_o the_o bread_n or_o of_o the_o accident_n where_o nevertheless_o epiphanius_n say_v in_o anchorato_n true_a he_o be_v who_o together_o with_o grace_n have_v give_v unto_o man_n that_o which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o image_n and_o how_o many_o thing_n be_v there_o which_o be_v of_o like_a similitude_n for_o we_o see_v what_o our_o saviour_n take_v into_o his_o hand_n according_a as_o we_o have_v it_o in_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o rise_v in_o the_o supper_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_o he_o say_v this_o be_v i_o and_o this_o and_o this_o and_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o equal_v nor_o alike_o neither_o to_o the_o image_n in_o the_o flesh_n nor_o to_o the_o invisible_a deity_n nor_o yet_o to_o the_o lineament_n of_o the_o member_n for_o this_o be_v of_o a_o round_a form_n and_o insensible_a as_o touch_v the_o power_n &_o through_o grace_n he_o will_v say_v this_o be_v i_o and_o this_o and_o this_o insensible_a the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v say_v of_o that_o which_o as_o touch_v power_n be_v insensible_a and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o man_n but_o beléeve_v his_o say_n for_o he_o that_o beléeve_v not_o that_o the_o same_o be_v true_a according_a as_o he_o speak_v it_o such_o a_o one_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n and_o from_o salvation_n but_o what_o we_o have_v hear_v that_o we_o believe_v because_o it_o be_v his_o word_n very_o we_o know_v out_o own_o lord_n who_o be_v altogether_o sense_n altogether_o sensible_a altogether_o god_n altogether_o the_o mover_n altogether_o the_o worker_n altogether_o the_o light_n and_o altogether_o incomprehensible_a but_o yet_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v the_o same_o to_o we_o which_o he_o give_v by_o his_o grace_n by_o which_o word_n you_o hear_v as_o concern_v a_o thing_n of_o round_a shape_n and_o insensible_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o power_n thereof_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o grace_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n neither_o can_v you_o avoid_v it_o but_o that_o that_o which_o be_v round_o whether_o it_o be_v substance_n or_o accident_n be_v that_o whereof_o epiphanius_n say_v that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o will_v have_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o that_o which_o be_v insensible_a according_a to_o power_n but_o it_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v without_o sense_n even_o as_o you_o have_v it_o express_o show_v in_o the_o sentence_n allege_v d._n tresham_n it_o behoove_v to_o read_v the_o ancient_a father_n favourablie_o as_o erasmus_n say_v and_o let_v the_o notary_n write_v that_o neither_o i_o name_v the_o accident_n nor_o yet_o the_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o further_o it_o
his_o body_n so_o as_o you_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o act_n i_o say_v that_o of_o necessity_n when_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v endue_v with_o passable_a quality_n and_o condition_n it_o can_v not_o be_v under_o impassable_a quality_n it_o may_v be_v change_v from_o the_o one_o sort_n to_o the_o other_o but_o to_o retain_v both_o at_o once_o it_o be_v unpossible_a of_o the_o second_o question_n whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n d._n tresham_n the_o ancient_a author_n irenaeus_n in_o his_o four_o book_n and_o 24._o chapter_n against_o the_o valentinian_o who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o create_v all_o thing_n how_o say_v he_o shall_v it_o appear_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o bread_n wherein_o thanks_o be_v give_v be_v the_o body_n of_o his_o lord_n if_o they_o deny_v the_o very_a son_n of_o that_o creator_n and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o how_o again_o do_v they_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n turn_v into_o corruption_n and_o receive_v not_o life_n the_o same_o be_v nourish_v with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v what_o manner_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n thus_o i_o dispute_v every_o thing_n whereby_o another_o thing_n be_v prove_v aught_o to_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o that_o which_o be_v prove_v but_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o flesh_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o true_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o christ_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o very_a true_a son_n of_o the_o creator_n of_o this_o world_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v there_o real_o present_a &_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v more_o certain_a to_o we_o than_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o d._n martyr_n irenaeus_n argument_n be_v true_a neither_o do_v i_o deny_v the_o same_o but_o it_o make_v nothing_o against_o i_o for_o that_o bread_n be_v a_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n &_o it_o be_v also_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o how_o sacramentallie_o and_o that_o iraeneus_n may_v conclude_v against_o the_o heretic_n which_o deny_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o this_o world_n he_o argue_v that_o christ_n take_v bread_n the_o which_o since_o it_o be_v from_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o this_o world_n christ_n will_v have_v use_v a_o other_o creature_n wherefore_o for_o irenaeus_n purpose_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o bread_n be_v a_o creature_n have_v place_n in_o very_a deed_n in_o the_o sacrament_n lest_o christ_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o usurper_n of_o a_o strange_a creature_n if_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o a_o other_o god_n than_o of_o he_o that_o make_v the_o world_n eucharist_n two_o sort_n of_o nourishment_n in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o that_o we_o may_v know_v what_o irenaeus_n judge_v as_o touch_v the_o eucharist_n let_v we_o consider_v that_o he_o write_v that_o our_o body_n be_v feed_v nourish_v consist_v and_o increase_v by_o the_o eucharist_n and_o this_o say_n be_v so_o true_a as_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o by_o this_o sacrament_n there_o come_v unto_o we_o two_o kind_n of_o nourishment_n one_o be_v natural_a to_o wit_n by_o the_o sign_n bread_n and_o wine_n by_o the_o which_o common_o a_o humane_a body_n be_v sustain_v unto_o which_o kind_n of_o nurtriment_n although_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v contemn_v yet_o irenaeus_n and_o other_o of_o the_o father_n do_v not_o attribute_n much_o thereunto_o the_o other_o nourishment_n be_v that_o while_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n we_o embrace_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o mind_n and_o faith_n and_o there_o first_o of_o all_o be_v our_o mind_n fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o with_o grace_n secondlie_o our_o body_n be_v renew_v that_o it_o may_v from_o day_n to_o day_n become_v a_o fit_a instrument_n for_o the_o spirit_n and_o so_o make_v more_o capable_a of_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n and_o this_o do_v irenaeus_n plain_o express_v when_o he_o say_v bread_n receive_v from_o the_o earth_n the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v no_o more_o common_a bread_n but_o be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n which_o consist_v of_o two_o thing_n earthly_a and_o heavenly_a even_o as_o our_o body_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v no_o long_o corruptible_a body_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n he_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o eucharist_n a_o reason_n of_o our_o true_a resurrection_n to_o come_v d._n tresham_n whereas_o you_o say_v that_o irenaeus_n do_v name_n bread_n in_o this_o place_n and_o that_o therefore_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o in_o the_o eucharist_n there_o be_v both_o to_o wit_n as_o well_o bread_n as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o great_a force_n to_o confirm_v his_o argument_n against_o the_o valentinian_o you_o have_v not_o satisfy_v i_o for_o look_v in_o what_o sense_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v name_n bread_n in_o this_o sacrament_n even_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n do_v irenaeus_n speak_v in_o this_o place_n and_o he_o most_o evident_o say_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o he_o call_v it_o bread_n either_o for_o that_o it_o be_v bread_n or_o else_o for_o that_o it_o retain_v the_o show_n of_o bread_n d._n martyr_n indeed_o i_o grant_v that_o irenaeus_n speak_v of_o bread_n in_o the_o very_a same_o sense_n that_o the_o scripture_n do_v and_o therefore_o be_v it_o in_o such_o wise_a grant_v by_o he_o as_o it_o be_v by_o they_o that_o bread_n do_v here_o remain_v but_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o bread_n after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o show_v out_o of_o his_o word_n and_o that_o by_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v name_v bread_n in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o you_o appoint_v i_o have_v often_o time_n disproove_v it_o d._n tresham_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 61._o homily_n unto_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n and_o upon_o john_n the_o 45._o homily_n write_v your_o brother_n be_v i_o mind_v to_o be_v and_o i_o have_v partake_v flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o you_o and_o those_o thing_n whereby_o i_o be_o join_v unto_o you_o i_o have_v again_o give_v to_o you_o whereupon_o it_o appear_v again_o that_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n whereby_o he_o be_v make_v of_o our_o consanguinity_n be_v give_v in_o the_o eucharist_n d._n martyr_n that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o the_o communicant_n in_o the_o eucharist_n i_o grant_v it_o we_o dispute_v as_o touch_v the_o manner_n how_o which_o i_o prove_v to_o be_v spiritual_a and_o yet_o do_v i_o not_o therefore_o understand_v that_o we_o receive_v a_o feign_a flesh_n or_o a_o feign_a body_n but_o in_o a_o sacrament_n &_o by_o faith_n we_o true_o receive_v those_o thing_n and_o be_v unite_v unto_o they_o d._n tresham_n whereas_o you_o say_v spiritual_o that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o by_o faith_n we_o may_v receive_v even_o without_o this_o sacrament_n d._n martyr_n albeit_o that_o chrysostome_n in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o write_v express_o this_o word_n spiritual_o yet_o do_v he_o sufficient_o express_v it_o elsewhere_o when_o he_o say_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o be_v such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o whereas_o you_o object_n that_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n may_v be_v also_o have_v without_o the_o sacrament_n i_o grant_v it_o christ_n for_o we_o may_v both_o with_o the_o figure_n and_o without_o the_o figure_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o both_o with_o the_o sign_n &_o without_o the_o sign_n while_o we_o consider_v in_o our_o mind_n christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o &_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o and_o do_v so_o believe_v we_o be_v true_o make_v partaker_n of_o he_o but_o yet_o the_o sign_n be_v join_v therewithal_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v as_o instrument_n for_o the_o better_a print_n of_o faith_n in_o our_o mind_n we_o be_v very_o much_o holpen_v for_o we_o be_v very_o slack_a unto_o divine_a thing_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_n of_o outward_a sacrament_n the_o disputation_n of_o the_o four_o day_n make_v between_o d._n william_n chadse_n wherein_o he_o oppose_v d._n peter_n martyr_n the_o first_o day_n of_o june_n the_o preface_n of_o d._n william_n chadse_n i_o find_v and_o i_o be_o most_o assure_o teach_v by_o experience_n that_o that_o be_v true_a which_o that_o same_o gregory_n nazianzen_n
appoint_v unto_o we_o we_o long_v by_o continual_a faith_n to_o attain_v indevor_v as_o paul_n say_v unto_o the_o philippian_n 13._o phil._n 3._o 13._o and_o i_o before_o cite_v to_o apprehend_v so_o farrefoorth_o as_o we_o be_v apprehend_v by_o christ_n jesus_n wherefore_o the_o end_n of_o the_o augmentation_n of_o our_o faith_n shall_v be_v that_o it_o may_v come_v so_o far_o forward_o as_o christ_n appoint_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v and_o by_o the_o increase_v thereof_o we_o more_o and_o more_o apprehend_v christ_n although_o not_o beyond_o the_o bound_n and_o limit_n of_o apprehend_v wherewith_o he_o himself_o embrace_v we_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n and_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v you_o defend_v also_o your_o opinion_n by_o this_o argument_n christ_n that_o the_o weakness_n or_o faith_n let_v not_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n our_o faith_n be_v not_o very_o perfect_a it_o be_v weak_a and_o oftentimes_o waver_v why_o therefore_o will_v we_o that_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n shall_v depend_v of_o the_o increase_n thereof_o and_o see_v that_o fullness_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v require_v of_o each_o one_o of_o we_o can_v never_o be_v have_v we_o shall_v expect_v in_o vain_a that_o christ_n shall_v more_v and_o more_o be_v unite_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o increasinge_n and_o augmentation_n thereof_o further_o indeed_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o weakness_n of_o faith_n as_o i_o do_v judge_n and_o you_o do_v object_n howbeit_o this_o infirmity_n thereof_o be_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o but_o that_o faith_n shall_v be_v account_v the_o mean_a and_o instrument_n whereby_o we_o apprehend_v christ_n eternal_a life_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o other_o such_o promise_n as_o it_o most_o evident_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n wherefore_o if_o that_o faith_n so_o it_o be_v a_o true_a faith_n be_v it_o never_o so_o little_a obtain_v these_o thing_n i_o see_v not_o how_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o afterward_o the_o self_n same_o also_o shall_v be_v judge_v to_o apprehend_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o when_o it_o have_v great_a and_o more_o increasinge_n as_o you_o yourself_o confess_v it_o have_v nor_o in_o my_o judgement_n be_v it_o a_o firm_a argument_n faith_n be_v never_o have_v of_o we_o full_a and_o perfect_a therefore_o by_o the_o increasinge_n and_o augmentation_n thereof_o we_o be_v not_o more_o fasten_v and_o unite_v unto_o christ_n let_v we_o borowe_n a_o similitude_n of_o charity_n the_o same_o be_v always_o unperfect_a while_o we_o live_v here_o and_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o we_o be_v join_v thereby_o unto_o our_o neighbour_n do_v it_o not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o charity_n of_o this_o or_o that_o man_n have_v a_o increase_n therefore_o he_o be_v more_o unite_a and_o join_v to_o his_o neighbour_n i_o think_v it_o follow_v &_o no_o man_n that_o be_v wise_a will_v reject_v that_o kind_n of_o argument_n furthermore_o the_o profit_n which_o you_o declare_v that_o come_v by_o the_o exercise_n of_o faith_n namely_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o help_n for_o our_o infirmity_n lest_o in_o very_a deed_n we_o shall_v fall_v therefrom_o by_o suffer_v the_o same_o to_o lie_v idle_a and_o unoccupied_a this_o i_o willing_o embrace_v yet_o so_o nevertheless_o as_o to_o this_o of_o you_o i_o will_v also_o join_v a_o other_o commodity_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o exercise_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o only_o available_a to_o the_o retain_v thereof_o but_o do_v also_o make_v it_o strong_a &_o great_a and_o the_o same_o the_o more_o it_o be_v strengthen_v &_o increase_v the_o more_o it_o serve_v to_o the_o apprehend_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o we_o be_v thereby_o more_o unite_v unto_o he_o when_o it_o be_v increase_v than_o we_o be_v by_o it_o when_o it_o be_v feeble_a and_o lessen_v and_o if_o you_o shun_v incorporate_n the_o word_n of_o unite_n &_o incorporate_n as_o you_o say_v you_o do_v the_o word_n of_o unite_n or_o incorporate_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o have_v a_o good_a meaning_n therein_o for_o why_o shall_v i_o suspect_v the_o contrary_a of_o you_o who_o i_o see_v to_o be_v so_o clear_o instruct_v by_o god_n in_o piety_n learning_n and_o holiness_n howbeit_o as_o i_o think_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o declare_v why_o i_o on_o the_o other_o side_n do_v not_o mislike_v of_o those_o word_n for_o beside_o that_o they_o very_o well_o serve_v to_o the_o open_n of_o this_o matter_n it_o have_v this_o withal_o that_o they_o be_v not_o strange_a from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o we_o have_v unto_o the_o ephesian_n the_o third_o chapter_n 6._o verse_n 6._o that_o the_o gentile_n may_v be_v coheir_n and_o of_o the_o same_o body_n as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v if_o they_o may_v be_v incorporate_v namely_o one_o with_o another_o into_o christ_n they_o may_v also_o be_v copartner_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n 15._o verse_n 15._o that_o he_o may_v make_v of_o twain_o one_o new_a man_n in_o himself_o make_v peace_n and_o that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v both_o unto_o god_n in_o one_o body_n by_o the_o cross_n &_o so_o forth_o we_o hear_v the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o christ_n bring_v two_o sort_n namely_o the_o gentile_n &_o the_o jew_n into_o one_o and_o that_o in_o himself_o because_o they_o can_v be_v one_o in_o themselves_o but_o in_o respect_n that_o they_o be_v unite_v and_o couple_v together_o in_o christ_n and_o he_o add_v that_o they_o be_v reconcile_v together_o but_o yet_o in_o one_o body_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n of_o christ_n himself_o for_o he_o add_v by_o the_o cross_n by_o which_o thing_n i_o gather_v that_o the_o word_n of_o unite_n and_o incorporate_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o i_o refuse_v they_o not_o as_o strange_a word_n and_o invent_v of_o late_a day_n but_o and_o if_o any_o do_v abuse_v they_o they_o do_v not_o well_o but_o what_o if_o the_o heretic_n will_v abuse_v the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v the_o faithful_a abstain_v from_o the_o use_n of_o they_o i_o trow_v not_o wherefore_o it_o be_v better_a to_o correct_v the_o abuse_n than_o to_o avoid_v the_o lawful_a &_o profitable_a use_n of_o these_o word_n but_o here_o may_v every_o one_o abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n sacrament_n how_o our_o unite_n with_o christ_n be_v augment_v by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whatsoever_o paul_n or_o i_o say_v and_o whereas_o you_o write_v at_o the_o last_o that_o i_o say_v we_o be_v the_o more_o unite_a unto_o christ_n by_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o this_o i_o say_v so_o it_o be_v not_o lay_v to_o my_o charge_n that_o i_o attribute_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o element_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v to_o the_o work_n wrought_v but_o to_o declare_v in_o few_o word_n this_o be_v my_o opinion_n that_o even_o as_o by_o the_o holy_a word_n while_o they_o be_v either_o hear_v or_o read_v our_o faith_n be_v stir_v up_o wax_v fervent_a and_o be_v increase_v so_o do_v it_o also_o happen_v while_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o visible_a word_n that_o our_o faith_n be_v make_v more_o firm_a and_o increase_v by_o the_o benefit_n of_o which_o increase_v because_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v of_o god_n we_o be_v become_v more_o &_o more_o join_v &_o incorporate_v unto_o christ_n in_o deed_n you_o say_v that_o we_o first_o have_v this_o union_n or_o incorporation_n with_o christ_n but_o that_o the_o same_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v seal_v which_o i_o deny_v not_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o the_o same_o but_o i_o think_v that_o that_o must_v also_o be_v affirm_v beside_o which_o do_v follow_v upon_o the_o seal_n for_o even_o as_o deed_n in_o writing_n if_o they_o be_v seal_v do_v the_o more_o cause_n credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o so_o sacrament_n be_v join_v to_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n do_v make_v they_o to_o be_v more_o certain_a and_o manifest_a so_o as_o by_o the_o light_n and_o brightness_n which_o be_v add_v by_o the_o seal_n the_o mind_n be_v stir_v up_o so_o that_o it_o beléeve_v the_o more_o and_o the_o more_o it_o beléeve_v the_o more_o earnest_o it_o apprehend_v christ_n and_o both_o come_v and_o join_v near_a unto_o he_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n learned_a sir_n that_o i_o have_v now_o to_o answer_v you_o by_o write_v and_o i_o be_o very_a well_o assure_v that_o you_o will_v take_v they_o in_o good_a part_n since_o i_o perceive_v you_o to_o be_v endue_v no_o less_o with_o humanity_n than_o with_o other_o gift_n of_o god_n fare_v you_o well_o and_o do_v not_o
for_o that_o she_o say_v there_o be_v now_o such_o discord_n and_o sedition_n in_o the_o kingdom_n for_o religion_n sake_n that_o it_o be_v exceed_o trouble_v hereunto_o martyr_n answer_v franklie_o that_o although_o he_o can_v not_o assure_v himself_o any_o good_a at_o the_o adversary_n hand_n yet_o he_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v courteous_o and_o mild_o deal_v withal_o so_o that_o no_o part_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v diminish_v or_o cut_v away_o he_o say_v it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o some_o discord_n shall_v arise_v since_o christ_n foreshow_v that_o such_o thing_n must_v happen_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o come_v to_o send_v not_o peace_n but_o the_o sword_n and_o that_o the_o fire_n be_v already_o kindle_v and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o otherwise_o but_o that_o it_o shall_v burn_v further_o that_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o pure_a and_o true_a religion_n shall_v be_v restore_v and_o retain_v without_o the_o cross_n and_o therefore_o say_v that_o it_o behoove_v she_o with_o a_o valiant_a courage_n and_o sincere_o to_o take_v this_o charge_n in_o hand_n and_o that_o god_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n will_v not_o fail_v who_o assuage_v evil_n and_o give_v patience_n moreover_o be_v oftentimes_o ask_v of_o the_o queen_n what_o counsel_n he_o can_v give_v for_o set_v of_o thing_n at_o quiet_a he_o answer_v that_o he_o see_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o by_o suffer_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o assemble_v together_o free_o in_o their_o holy_a congregation_n grant_v they_o church_n wherein_o they_o may_v have_v godly_a sermon_n for_o if_o she_o will_v cause_v this_o to_o be_v do_v the_o truth_n will_v easy_o manifest_v itself_o and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n of_o conference_n or_o disputation_n last_o when_o he_o be_v demand_v what_o he_o judge_v as_o touch_v the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n he_o answer_v that_o to_o he_o the_o word_n of_o god_n seem_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o because_o therein_o be_v clear_o contain_v all_o thing_n which_o serve_v unto_o salvation_n neither_o if_o that_o confession_n be_v receive_v say_v he_o will_v there_o follow_v a_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o romanistes_n since_o they_o have_v condemn_v the_o same_o as_o heretical_a to_o the_o same_o effect_n do_v he_o answer_v the_o king_n of_o naverra_n and_o other_o great_a man_n in_o the_o court_n which_o ask_v his_o opinion_n of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n after_o this_o follow_v the_o public_a action_n whereunto_o the_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n think_v not_o good_a to_o admit_v martyr_n but_o yet_o the_o queen_n will_v have_v he_o to_o come_v in_o this_o action_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n make_v a_o oration_n which_o also_o he_o do_v afterward_o publish_v herein_o he_o speak_v many_o thing_n as_o touch_v his_o church_n as_o that_o which_o have_v a_o continue_a succession_n imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o which_o worship_v christ_n without_o idolatry_n he_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n stand_v only_o of_o the_o elect_a because_o otherwise_o it_o shall_v become_v invisible_a and_o that_o man_n shall_v always_o be_v uncertain_a of_o the_o same_o further_o he_o add_v that_o the_o counsel_n can_v not_o err_v neither_o in_o doctrine_n nor_o in_o manner_n but_o that_o they_o may_v alter_v many_o thing_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o diversity_n of_o t●mes_n and_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n itself_o be_v before_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v from_o the_o church_n after_o this_o he_o digress_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o mass_n and_o of_o transubstantiation_n but_o he_o affirm_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v there_o present_a not_o indeed_o local_o or_o circumscriptible_o but_o after_o a_o heavenly_a manner_n and_o as_o he_o speak_v supersubstantial_o and_o when_o he_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o his_o oration_n he_o turn_v himself_o unto_o the_o queen_n mother_n and_o to_o the_o king_n and_o upon_o his_o knee_n pray_v they_o that_o they_o will_v persist_v in_o that_o faith_n wherein_o they_o be_v bear_v and_o baptize_v and_o therewithal_o he_o offer_v with_o all_o his_o bishop_n all_o manner_n of_o duty_n service_n and_o obedience_n a_o few_o day_n after_o beza_n according_a to_o his_o singular_a learning_n do_v great_o in_o open_a audience_n confute_v the_o cardinal_n of_o loraine_n oration_n but_o the_o cardinal_n oppose_v himself_o against_o he_o and_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v either_o subscribe_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n or_o else_o that_o they_o shall_v accept_v of_o a_o brief_a draught_n which_o he_o bring_v touch_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o that_o unless_o they_o will_v condescende_v herein_o he_o will_v deal_v &_o talk_v no_o further_o for_o he_o seek_v cause_n to_o break_v off_o the_o conference_n in_o this_o action_n do_v martyr_n hold_v his_o peace_n because_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o french_a tongue_n but_o when_o they_o meet_v together_o again_o he_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o brethren_n and_o by_o the_o queen_n leave_n he_o himself_o also_o speak_v a_o great_a while_n in_o the_o italian_a tongue_n against_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n who_o seem_v to_o refuse_v the_o join_n with_o he_o and_o allege_v for_o excuse_v that_o martyr_n speak_v in_o the_o italian_a tongue_n as_o though_o he_o have_v not_o understand_v the_o same_o and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v rather_o deal_v with_o a_o man_n of_o his_o own_o language_n howbeit_o he_o endeavour_v to_o answer_v to_o some_o thing_n by_o he_o allege_v and_o moreover_o a_o cert●ine_n spaniard_n be_v a_o master_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o jesuite_n make_v a_o oration_n in_o italian_a against_o our_o man_n whereunto_o beza_n answer_v in_o few_o word_n but_o martyr_n begin_v again_o to_o argue_v against_o the_o cardinal_n as_o touch_v the_o supper_n howbeit_o because_o the_o night_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o beside_o that_o the_o act_n be_v full_a of_o contention_n so_o that_o even_o the_o cardinal_n himself_o abstain_v not_o from_o clamour_n the_o day_n there_o be_v no_o more_o do_v but_o now_o after_o that_o the_o adversary_n our_o man_n reclaim_v but_o in_o vain_a have_v find_v the_o mean_n that_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o conference_n shall_v take_v beginning_n at_o the_o article_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n there_o be_v five_o speaker_n choose_v of_o each_o part_n of_o the_o adversary_n party_n the_o valentine_n and_o sagentian_n bishop_n botilerus_fw-la salignaicus_n &_o depensius_n which_o be_v doctor_n and_o of_o our_o man_n beza_n marlorat_n spina_n m._n de_fw-fr sola_fw-la and_o our_o martyr_n these_o deal_v without_o any_o judge_n use_v only_o two_o notary_n and_o first_o they_o seek_v diligent_o to_o have_v some_o certain_a rule_n propose_v wherein_o the_o party_n may_v come_v together_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christos_n body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o when_o as_o many_o thing_n have_v be_v allege_v on_o both_o side_n martyr_v also_o be_v demand_v set_v forth_o a_o brief_a writing_n of_o his_o opinion_n which_o nevertheless_o satisfy_v not_o the_o bishop_n for_o that_o they_o say_v it_o be_v over_o bare_a but_o the_o disputer_n of_o our_o part_n agree_v with_o martyr_n afterward_o there_o be_v between_o they_o a_o disputation_n of_o this_o question_n for_o the_o space_n of_o certain_a day_n and_o at_o the_o length_n a_o new_a order_n be_v take_v whereby_o both_o the_o part_n may_v come_v together_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o supper_n and_o hereunto_o the_o disputer_n of_o each_o part_n agree_v and_o subscribe_v but_o martyr_n when_o he_o see_v that_o therein_o be_v certain_a ambiguity_n declare_v that_o he_o will_v not_o vary_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o first_o write_v which_o he_o have_v deliver_v unto_o they_o he_o together_o with_o beza_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o speaker_n of_o our_o part_n add_v a_o brief_a declaration_n unto_o the_o latter_a rule_n that_o ambiguity_n be_v remoove_v the_o adversary_n may_v see_v what_o our_o meaning_n be_v but_o the_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n after_o it_o be_v declare_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o speaker_n be_v agree_v as_o touch_v this_o article_n disallow_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v by_o their_o own_o speaker_n yea_o and_o accuse_v they_o of_o heresy_n wherefore_o by_o their_o mean_n the_o conference_n be_v suspend_v for_o certain_a day_n for_o now_o both_o by_o their_o own_o will_n and_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n they_o decree_v to_o break_v off_o the_o conference_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o bishop_n write_v certain_a canon_n and_o at_o length_n the_o 19_o of_o october_n the_o cardinal_n of_o the_o house_n